Selected quad for the lemma: power_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
power_n body_n raise_v sow_v 6,220 5 12.4203 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A19987 Doomes-Day: or, A treatise of the resurrection of the body Delivered in 22. sermons on 1. Cor. 15. Whereunto are added 7. other sermons, on 1. Cor. 16. By the late learned and iudicious divine, Martin Day ...; Doomes-Day Day, Martin, d. 1629. 1636 (1636) STC 6427; ESTC S109431 470,699 792

There are 37 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

of_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o the_o prime_a material_n and_o beginning_n it_o be_v raise_v never_o to_o fall_v down_o again_o it_o be_v raise_v not_o to_o relapse_n again_o but_o to_o stand_v as_o a_o goodly_a monument_n for_o ever_o it_o be_v raise_v by_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o he_o that_o raise_v the_o poor_a out_o of_o the_o dust_n and_o mire_n 8._o psal_n 113.7_o 8._o and_o make_v they_o equal_a to_o the_o prince_n of_o his_o people_n therefore_o in_o this_o word_n the_o apostle_n will_v teach_v we_o also_o wherein_o our_o hope_n consist_v it_o be_v sow_v that_o be_v a_o hopeful_a action_n but_o after_o it_o be_v sow_v it_o must_v be_v raise_v again_o that_o be_v a_o dependent_a action_n which_o be_v not_o in_o ourselves_o but_o from_o the_o lord_n therefore_o we_o must_v raise_v our_o heart_n unto_o god_n and_o return_v our_o devotion_n and_o best_a affection_n to_o he_o while_o we_o live_v here_o that_o he_o may_v raise_v these_o body_n of_o we_o when_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o raise_v themselves_o but_o when_o they_o shall_v lie_v in_o the_o dust_n of_o confusion_n he_o shall_v raise_v they_o up_o that_o they_o may_v be_v live_a temple_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o ever_o to_o inhabit_v it_o be_v necessary_a before_o hand_n to_o raise_v our_o spirit_n unto_o he_o that_o he_o may_v make_v a_o requital_n unto_o we_o at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o his_o visitation_n so_o much_o for_o the_o metaphor_n it_o be_v sow_v in_o corruption_n corruption_n be_v the_o worst_a change_n that_o can_v be_v it_o be_v a_o motion_n from_o a_o be_v to_o a_o not-being_a for_o as_o generation_n be_v a_o work_n of_o god_n whereby_o something_o which_o be_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o have_v a_o be_v so_o corruption_n be_v a_o work_n which_o god_n permit_v to_o be_v do_v whereby_o a_o thing_n be_v bring_v to_o fall_v from_o that_o be_v either_o to_o no-being_a at_o all_o to_o have_v no_o be_v in_o our_o sense_n or_o else_o to_o such_o a_o base_a and_o naughty_a be_v that_o a_o man_n can_v see_v no_o reason_n why_o it_o shall_v ever_o have_v be_v so_o glorious_a and_o so_o goodly_a to_o come_v to_o such_o a_o foul_a disgraceful_a downfall_n corruption_n therefore_o be_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v as_o in_o all_o thing_n we_o see_v in_o the_o world_n in_o natural_a &_o artificial_a thing_n when_o a_o matter_n be_v corrupt_v once_o it_o grow_v fit_a for_o nothing_o and_o although_o there_o be_v some_o kind_n of_o liquor_n that_o when_o they_o be_v corrupt_v they_o serve_v for_o some_o use_n as_o wine_n when_o it_o be_v corrupt_v it_o turn_v to_o vinegar_n and_o although_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o drink_v yet_o it_o serve_v to_o raise_v the_o appetite_n in_o sauce_n and_o so_o divers_a other_o thing_n do_v so_o corrupt_v that_o notwithstanding_o they_o serve_v for_o some_o use_n but_o yet_o the_o chief_a and_o great_a number_n of_o thing_n when_o they_o come_v once_o to_o be_v corrupt_v they_o come_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v to_o nothing_o to_o a_o kind_n of_o dissolution_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o can_v be_v turn_v unto_o nothing_o simple_o but_o because_o the_o use_n and_o property_n and_o substance_n be_v so_o disgrace_v and_o a_o contrary_a thing_n succeed_v a_o better_a it_o be_v as_o if_o the_o thing_n be_v not_o at_o all_o now_o this_o corruption_n be_v do_v two_o way_n it_o be_v effect_v either_o by_o separation_n of_o the_o matter_n or_o by_o remove_v of_o the_o form_n the_o matter_n and_o the_o form_n you_o know_v be_v the_o chief_a thing_n of_o which_o every_o body_n consist_v and_o we_o see_v that_o in_o death_n these_o thing_n hold_v exact_o for_o the_o form_n of_o man_n be_v his_o reasonable_a soul_n as_o long_o as_o that_o be_v in_o the_o body_n it_o be_v compact_v and_o free_a from_o corruption_n and_o it_o keep_v the_o beauty_n in_o the_o form_n and_o image_n of_o god_n in_o its_o proper_a frame_n and_o figure_n but_o when_o the_o soul_n be_v go_v than_o corruption_n work_v and_o dissolve_v the_o matter_n to_o now_o when_o the_o matter_n be_v dissolve_v or_o the_o element_n be_v dissolve_v and_o corrupt_v this_o be_v that_o corruption_n which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o here_o when_o he_o say_v the_o body_n be_v sow_v in_o corruption_n that_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o body_n which_o consist_v of_o blood_n and_o flesh_n and_o skin_n and_o bone_n and_o colour_n and_o complexion_n and_o proportion_n and_o figure_n and_o frame_v all_o these_o go_v away_o present_o after_o the_o soul_n be_v go_v and_o though_o some_o hold_v long_o than_o other_o as_o be_v of_o more_o solid_a part_n yet_o they_o continue_v not_o long_o even_o but_o a_o few_o year_n and_o in_o some_o ground_n a_o few_o day_n destroy_v the_o whole_a man_n this_o corruption_n begin_v when_o we_o begin_v god_n it_o be_v true_a make_v the_o body_n of_o man_n uncorrupt_a have_v he_o persist_v in_o obedience_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o man_n by_o his_o prevarication_n by_o transgression_n of_o god_n command_n be_v draw_v into_o sin_n he_o bring_v upon_o he_o this_o worm_n of_o corruption_n which_o never_o cease_v to_o work_v upon_o the_o power_n and_o faculty_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o upon_o every_o part_n till_o at_o the_o last_o it_o work_v it_o to_o a_o utter_a nothing_o to_o a_o very_a desolation_n and_o this_o corruption_n if_o it_o can_v be_v contain_v it_o be_v well_o if_o it_o can_v consist_v within_o some_o term_n for_o corruption_n be_v proper_a to_o the_o body_n but_o yet_o through_o the_o infection_n of_o sin_n the_o gangrene_n have_v so_o poison_v and_o possess_v the_o whole_a man_n that_o corruption_n by_o a_o metaphor_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o soul_n to_o which_o be_v the_o special_a part_n of_o man_n and_o when_o the_o best_a thing_n be_v corrupt_v the_o corruption_n be_v most_o woeful_a of_o all_o 6.23_o matth_n 6.23_o if_o the_o light_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o be_v darkness_n how_o great_a be_v that_o darkness_n say_v the_o lord_n jesus_n man_n in_o this_o world_n be_v corrupt_a in_o body_n they_o be_v corrupt_v in_o soul_n they_o be_v corrupt_v in_o their_o understanding_n in_o their_o speech_n they_o be_v corrupt_v in_o their_o way_n 53.1_o psal_n 53.1_o as_o the_o prophet_n say_v corrupt_a they_o be_v and_o become_v abominable_a in_o their_o do_n there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o they_o be_v corrupt_v in_o their_o conscience_n the_o conscience_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v defile_v with_o hypocrisy_n that_o they_o stink_v in_o the_o nostril_n of_o god_n and_o man_n and_o to_o this_o corruption_n every_o man_n be_v subject_a more_o or_o less_o but_o the_o chief_a corruption_n intend_v here_o be_v corruptibility_n that_o be_v the_o rottenness_n of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n when_o they_o be_v once_o dissolve_v and_o melt_v and_o fall_v from_o one_o another_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n because_o we_o know_v it_o by_o experience_n and_o we_o bear_v about_o we_o these_o corrupt_a body_n and_o we_o be_v trouble_v with_o the_o sign_n of_o corruption_n every_o day_n if_o we_o understand_v any_o thing_n use_v 1_o it_o shall_v teach_v we_o therefore_o not_o to_o triumph_v in_o any_o of_o these_o worldly_a thing_n that_o puff_n up_o the_o flesh_n and_o fill_v the_o mind_n with_o vain_a conceit_n of_o its_o own_o sufficiency_n but_o rather_o let_v we_o study_v mortification_n such_o as_o become_v the_o child_n of_o god_n let_v we_o weep_v for_o our_o own_o corruption_n for_o they_o grow_v so_o fast_o upon_o we_o that_o they_o make_v we_o odious_a even_o unto_o our_o own_o self_n when_o we_o come_v to_o have_v a_o sense_n of_o ourselves_o again_o it_o teach_v we_o this_o to_o take_v heed_n how_o we_o use_v 2_o patch_n over_o this_o corruptibility_n as_o we_o use_v to_o do_v what_o a_o deal_n of_o cost_n what_o a_o deal_n of_o paint_v and_o art_n and_o labour_n and_o time_n be_v spend_v now_o adays_o to_o conceal_v this_o corruption_n corrupt_a body_n will_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v corrupt_a but_o they_o will_v be_v immortal_a and_o eternal_a and_o those_o offensive_a thing_n that_o be_v in_o nature_n and_o that_o grossness_n and_o loathsomnesse_n that_o lurk_v in_o these_o body_n we_o seek_v by_o perfume_n and_o by_o orient_a colour_n and_o singular_a diet_n to_o suppress_v they_o and_o obscure_v they_o that_o they_o may_v not_o appear_v but_o now_o the_o lord_n have_v put_v a_o worm_n in_o this_o flesh_n see_v it_o and_o acknowledge_v it_o and_o wail_v over_o it_o make_v not_o thyself_o better_a then_o thou_o be_v deceive_v not_o thyself_o thou_o be_v nothing_o but_o dust_n and_o ash_n a_o corrupt_a creature_n a_o mass_n of_o corruption_n why_o then_o be_v thou_o
to_o its_o own_o condition_n and_o so_o it_o come_v from_o better_a to_o worse_o and_o from_o thence_o to_o nothing_o at_o all_o to_o dust_n and_o ash_n but_o there_o by_o reason_n that_o the_o lord_n shall_v show_v his_o mercy_n and_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o infinite_a delight_n that_o man_n shall_v take_v in_o god_n again_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o continual_a application_n of_o god_n to_o man_n by_o a_o continual_a influence_n as_o the_o school_n speak_v so_o as_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o think_v of_o any_o entrance_n of_o corruption_n as_o that_o place_n where_o the_o sun_n shine_v continual_o can_v never_o be_v dark_a and_o that_o plot_n of_o ground_n which_o have_v a_o sweet_a well_o ever_o pour_v into_o it_o can_v never_o be_v dry_a nor_o thirsty_a so_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v where_o god_n be_v always_o slow_v in_o his_o light_n and_o love_n and_o grace_n it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v any_o press_n in_o or_o any_o suspicion_n of_o corruption_n to_o come_v again_o therefore_o concern_v these_o thing_n the_o scripture_n tell_v we_o psal_n 36._o 9_o psal_n 36_o 9_o with_o thou_o say_v the_o prophet_n be_v the_o well_o of_o life_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v thy_o water_n run_v always_o sweet_a 87.7_o psal_n 87.7_o and_o abundant_o all_o fresh_a spring_n be_v in_o thou_o 23.1_o psal_n 23.1_o therefore_o we_o shall_v not_o lack_v nor_o die_v for_o thirst_n because_o we_o shall_v have_v the_o well_o of_o life_n 36.8_o psal_n 36.8_o and_o psal_n 36._o thou_o feed_v they_o with_o the_o fullness_n of_o thy_o house_n and_o thou_o give_v they_o pleasure_n as_o out_o of_o a_o river_n and_o for_o this_o purpose_n also_o even_o for_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v assure_v of_o this_o the_o scripture_n tell_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v in_o stead_n of_o sorrow_n fullness_n of_o joy_n in_o stead_n of_o darkness_n in_o this_o life_n we_o shall_v have_v eternal_a light_n in_o stead_n of_o sickness_n we_o shall_v have_v his_o save_a health_n in_o stead_n of_o death_n we_o shall_v have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o so_o we_o see_v what_o this_o incorruptibility_n be_v it_o consist_v in_o impassibility_n that_o the_o body_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o suffer_v from_o any_o thing_n because_o god_n shall_v be_v always_o flow_v into_o it_o his_o goodness_n and_o love_n in_o christ_n jesus_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o suffer_v from_o a_o tempt_a devil_n it_o shall_v not_o suffer_v from_o it_o self_n nor_o from_o any_o other_o create_v nature_n it_o shall_v not_o suffer_v from_o sickness_n nor_o from_o time_n the_o tooth_n of_o time_n which_o devour_v all_o thing_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o set_v its_o fang_n upon_o the_o body_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v not_o suffer_v from_o hell_n nor_o from_o death_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o matter_n of_o fear_n in_o any_o thing_n they_o shall_v not_o suffer_v from_o the_o flame_n of_o fire_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o consume_v those_o glorious_a body_n nor_o the_o sharp_a sword_n shall_v not_o pierce_v the_o least_o hair_n of_o they_o but_o as_o we_o see_v god_n preserve_v the_o three_o child_n in_o the_o fiery_a furnace_n 3.27_o dan._n 3.27_o when_o it_o be_v extraordinary_a hot_a that_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o smell_n of_o the_o singe_a of_o the_o fire_n upon_o their_o garment_n the_o bless_a god_n that_o be_v able_a to_o do_v this_o in_o these_o corrupt_a body_n much_o more_o will_v he_o do_v it_o in_o that_o incorruptible_a condition_n when_o he_o shall_v advance_v they_o to_o that_o glory_n which_o himself_o will_v give_v they_o who_o be_v the_o prime_a author_n and_o pattern_n of_o impassibility_n and_o if_o the_o lion_n be_v not_o able_a with_o their_o tooth_n when_o they_o be_v so_o famish_v 6._o dan._n 6._o to_o seize_v upon_o the_o body_n of_o daniel_n when_o he_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o dungeon_n much_o less_o shall_v infirmity_n have_v power_n or_o any_o other_o violence_n be_v able_a to_o touch_v the_o body_n of_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v glorify_v in_o the_o day_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o shall_v rise_v in_o incorruption_n i_o see_v the_o time_n be_v past_a i_o will_v but_o touch_v the_o next_o point_n and_o leave_v the_o rest_n it_o be_v sow_v in_o dishonour_n it_o be_v raise_v again_o in_o honour_n the_o great_a grief_n that_o a_o man_n conceive_v in_o his_o death_n be_v the_o dishonourable_a condition_n that_o do_v accompany_v he_o that_o though_o he_o be_v never_o so_o beautiful_a and_o belove_v before_o yet_o his_o best_a and_o dear_a friend_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o quit_v he_o now_o yea_o they_o can_v endure_v his_o company_n so_o that_o he_o must_v be_v remove_v out_o of_o sight_n as_o be_v a_o odious_a spectacle_n to_o look_v upon_o as_o a_o intolerable_a neighbour_n that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v come_v near_o as_o one_o that_o will_v infect_v all_o the_o society_n where_o he_o be_v as_o a_o pestilent_a creature_n that_o must_v be_v shun_v and_o avoid_v that_o must_v be_v shut_v up_o close_o within_o the_o ground_n where_o he_o may_v do_v no_o harm_n nor_o be_v noisome_a and_o offensive_a to_o those_o that_o be_v above_o ground_n this_o be_v the_o strange_a dishonour_n to_o our_o nature_n that_o the_o great_a lord_n and_o lady_n which_o have_v sleep_v before_o upon_o their_o bed_n of_o ivory_n 6.4_o amos_n 6.4_o which_o have_v their_o goodly_a curtain_n and_o canopy_n and_o singular_a art_n to_o give_v they_o pleasure_n and_o contentment_n now_o be_v dead_a they_o must_v be_v out_v from_o their_o palace_n and_o their_o goodly-roome_n and_o be_v thrust_v in_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o earth_n they_o must_v be_v account_v such_o kind_n of_o creature_n as_o with_o who_o there_o be_v no_o cohabitation_n even_o abraham_n himself_o although_o he_o love_v sarah_n dear_o as_o his_o own_o heart_n yet_o he_o can_v not_o endure_v she_o when_o she_o be_v dead_a but_o after_o a_o certain_a season_n when_o he_o have_v mourn_v for_o she_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o be_v a_o suitor_n to_o the_o son_n of_o heth_n to_o sell_v he_o as_o much_o ground_n as_o to_o bury_v his_o dead_a in_o 23.4_o gen._n 23.4_o to_o remove_v she_o out_o of_o his_o sight_n the_o best_a and_o the_o mighty_a monarch_n in_o the_o world_n can_v secure_v themselves_o from_o this_o dishonour_n if_o they_o die_v on_o the_o sea_n they_o must_v be_v cast_v overboard_o or_o if_o they_o die_v on_o land_n they_o must_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o enter_v into_o this_o common_a misfortune_n and_o although_o art_n and_o embalm_v and_o curiosity_n may_v do_v much_o yet_o divers_a part_n of_o they_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v take_v &_o commit_v to_o the_o ground_n lest_o all_o about_o they_o be_v pester_v by_o they_o this_o be_v the_o woeful_a stroke_n of_o nature_n the_o dishonour_n and_o deformity_n the_o beastly-figure_n of_o death_n which_o make_v a_o man_n terrible_a to_o all_o the_o beholder_n so_o that_o that_o goodly_a countenance_n shall_v be_v turn_v to_o a_o ghastly_a skeleton_n that_o those_o fair_a cheek_n shall_v come_v to_o be_v pale_a ash_n or_o as_o a_o black_a charcoal_n that_o those_o sparkle_a blaze_a eye_n shall_v become_v nothing_o but_o as_o a_o dim_a and_o dark_a pebble_n and_o that_o which_o be_v the_o most_o fragrant_a piece_n of_o all_o the_o mouth_n to_o become_v the_o most_o ugly_a and_o odious_a of_o all_o the_o lord_n have_v draw_v the_o pattern_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o face_n of_o a_o dead_a man_n and_o have_v make_v it_o more_o sinful_a and_o more_o ugly_a in_o that_o one_o spectacle_n then_o in_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o thus_o he_o that_o will_v not_o rest_v in_o the_o beauty_n of_o his_o creation_n that_o will_v not_o maintain_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o countenance_n and_o the_o image_n of_o god_n that_o he_o have_v imprint_v upon_o he_o he_o shall_v now_o undergo_v the_o most_o foul_a image_n and_o figure_n that_o can_v be_v devise_v there_o be_v no_o beast_n no_o creature_n that_o be_v half_a so_o ugly_a nothing_o fall_v so_o from_o itself_o nothing_o so_o unlike_o itself_o there_o be_v nothing_o traverse_v with_o such_o contrary_a passion_n and_o with_o such_o figure_n and_o line_n of_o misery_n as_o the_o face_n of_o a_o dead_a man_n it_o be_v so_o with_o all_o man_n and_o although_o it_o appear_v less_o in_o some_o then_o in_o other_o yet_o leave_v they_o a_o certain_a time_n and_o they_o all_o at_o the_o last_o become_v so_o ghastly_a that_o a_o man_n that_o have_v a_o constant_a mind_n and_o can_v endure_v many_o thing_n yet_o he_o loathe_v to_o behold_v a_o dead_a man_n this_o be_v the_o dishonour_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n such_o a_o baseness_n and_o contempt_n that_o a_o man_n best_a friend_n shall_v run_v
a_o spiritual_a body_n so_o it_o be_v also_o write_v the_o first_o adam_n be_v make_v a_o live_a soul_n and_o the_o last_o adam_n be_v make_v a_o quicken_a spirit_n it_o be_v sow_o in_o weakness_n it_o be_v raise_v in_o power_n the_o earth_n be_v god_n store-house_n whereinto_o he_o commit_v his_o treasure_n even_o the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n the_o temple_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n say_v tertullian_n tertull._n tertull._n god_n have_v make_v the_o earth_n to_o be_v as_o a_o warehouse_n therein_o to_o lay_v his_o commodity_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o require_v &_o fetch_v they_o forth_o again_o the_o sow_v of_o these_o earthly_a body_n be_v manifest_a to_o we_o all_o but_o the_o raise_n of_o the_o seed_n that_o be_v sow_v and_o the_o come_n in_o of_o the_o harvest_n that_o be_v lock_v up_o and_o hide_v in_o the_o chamber_n of_o eternity_n in_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n and_o there_o be_v no_o way_n for_o we_o to_o have_v access_n and_o to_o look_v into_o it_o but_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n whereby_o while_o we_o live_v in_o this_o flesh_n we_o have_v a_o little_a peep_n as_o it_o be_v through_o the_o keyhole_n to_o see_v a_o glimmer_n of_o the_o happiness_n and_o of_o the_o gracious_a promise_n consign_v unto_o we_o in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o thing_n that_o here_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o sow_v of_o the_o body_n be_v so_o common_o know_v as_o that_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o call_v that_o in_o question_n it_o be_v sow_o in_o dishonour_n it_o be_v sow_o in_o weakness_n it_o be_v sow_o in_o misery_n and_o mortality_n and_o the_o apostle_n conclude_v all_o it_o be_v sow_o a_o natural_a body_n but_o it_o be_v raise_v again_o a_o spiritual_a body_n and_o because_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o offend_v some_o ear_n that_o never_o hear_v of_o that_o distinction_n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o a_o spiritual_a body_n for_o if_o it_o be_v a_o spirit_n than_o it_o be_v no_o body_n and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o body_n than_o it_o be_v not_o spiritual_a these_o thing_n imply_v a_o contradiction_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n prove_v that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v he_o make_v good_a his_o distinction_n and_o tell_v they_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a body_n and_o a_o spiritual_a body_n and_o this_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o head_n of_o they_o both_o out_o of_o the_o two_o main_a fountain_n of_o mankind_n the_o two_o adam_n the_o one_o work_v to_o misery_n to_o sin_n and_o to_o corruption_n and_o destruction_n and_o the_o other_o work_v to_o grace_n to_o obedience_n and_o to_o eternal_a glory_n and_o he_o say_v the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v make_v a_o live_a soul_n but_o the_o second_o be_v make_v and_o ordain_v a_o quicken_a spirit_n the_o first_o be_v make_v to_o live_v to_o have_v life_n himself_o but_o he_o can_v not_o give_v life_n to_o another_o yea_o and_o that_o life_n that_o he_o have_v be_v but_o mortal_a and_o frail_a but_o the_o second_o adam_n be_v make_v to_o have_v another_o kind_n of_o life_n and_o to_o be_v all_o spirit_n intend_v spiritual_a thing_n and_o he_o be_v not_o only_o able_a to_o live_v in_o himself_o but_o to_o give_v life_n to_o all_o his_o follower_n &_o to_o quicken_v all_o they_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o yea_o although_o they_o be_v dead_a in_o their_o grave_n although_o they_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n or_o dead_a in_o the_o damp_n of_o conscience_n yet_o he_o be_v make_v a_o quicken_a spirit_n to_o rouse_v and_o to_o raise_v they_o to_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o word_n read_v unto_o you_o to_o proceed_v in_o order_n there_o need_v no_o great_a distribution_n or_o division_n of_o the_o text_n because_o the_o word_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o probate_n of_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n have_v speak_v before_o he_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o scripture_n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o difference_n as_o a_o natural_a body_n and_o a_o spiritual_a body_n the_o scripture_n he_o bring_v be_v in_o gen._n 2.7_o 7._o gen._n 2_o 7._o where_o it_o be_v say_v the_o lord_n breathe_v into_o adam_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o so_o adam_n or_o man_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n or_o a_o live_a substance_n in_o the_o order_n of_o the_o word_n there_o be_v two_o miserable_a property_n that_o remain_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o touch_v the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n property_n division_n into_o two_o miserable_a property_n that_o they_o be_v sow_o in_o weakness_n that_o they_o be_v sow_o mere_o natural_a but_o the_o glory_n that_o god_n shall_v put_v upon_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o high_a contrary_n they_o shall_v rise_v in_o great_a strength_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v raise_v in_o a_o spiritual_a nature_n in_o a_o spiritual_a quality_n and_o condition_n weakness_n 1_o property_n sow_v in_o weakness_n concern_v the_o first_o that_o the_o body_n of_o man_n be_v sow_o in_o weakness_n every_o man_n see_v there_o be_v nothing_o more_o weak_a and_o despicable_a than_o that_o all_o the_o whole_a life_n of_o man_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o world_n of_o weakness_n as_o it_o be_v the_o prerogative_n of_o god_n to_o be_v almighty_a so_o it_o be_v the_o miserable_a quality_n of_o man_n to_o be_v all_o weakness_n when_o he_o come_v first_o into_o the_o world_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o weak_a than_o he_o when_o he_o grow_v in_o the_o world_n the_o least_o fit_a of_o disease_n of_o a_o ague_n any_o kind_n of_o opposition_n whatsoever_o will_v defeat_v he_o and_o bring_v he_o on_o his_o knee_n to_o such_o a_o degree_n of_o weakness_n and_o infirmity_n that_o he_o shall_v scarce_o support_v and_o sustain_v himself_o and_o even_o those_o that_o be_v the_o strong_a of_o man_n that_o be_v strong_a to_o pour_v in_o strong_a drink_n 5.22_o esay_n 5.22_o as_o the_o bless_a prophet_n i_o say_v say_v that_o spend_v their_o time_n in_o riot_n those_o man_n do_v soon_o bring_v upon_o they_o this_o fatal_a weakness_n and_o none_o end_v so_o foul_a as_o they_o because_o though_o they_o seem_v to_o struggle_v with_o the_o infirmity_n of_o nature_n and_o to_o overcome_v and_o transcend_v they_o for_o a_o time_n yet_o that_o inherent_a weakness_n which_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n rebound_v upon_o they_o and_o work_v they_o at_o last_o to_o nothing_o to_o the_o foul_a expiration_n that_o can_v be_v nay_o those_o noble_a spirit_n which_o as_o tiberius_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v some_o spirit_n in_o the_o world_n that_o account_v their_o business_n to_o be_v their_o solace_n their_o business_n and_o labour_n they_o account_v it_o comfort_n and_o consolation_n to_o they_o yet_o these_o man_n pluck_v and_o call_v upon_o themselves_o a_o great_a weakness_n than_o other_o man_n so_o that_o the_o life_n of_o man_n whether_o it_o be_v base_a and_o degenerous_a or_o whether_o it_o be_v noble_a and_o sprightly_a be_v nothing_o else_o but_o weakness_n if_o a_o man_n will_v do_v nothing_o but_o sleep_v out_o his_o time_n he_o shall_v be_v surprise_v at_o length_n with_o base_a weakness_n if_o he_o be_v vigilant_a and_o use_v the_o time_n that_o god_n have_v give_v he_o to_o the_o high_a and_o best_a purpose_n he_o be_v still_o overtake_v with_o weakness_n and_o especial_o when_o the_o conscience_n of_o sin_n work_v upon_o a_o man_n there_o be_v nothing_o so_o weaken_v he_o as_o that_o do_v 39.11_o psal_n 39.11_o when_o thou_o chastise_v man_n for_o sin_n thou_o make_v he_o like_o a_o garment_n that_o be_v moth-eaten_a and_o as_o the_o prophet_n david_n say_v by_o reason_n of_o my_o sin_n my_o bone_n be_v rot_v and_o corrupt_v and_o all_o my_o ulcer_n stink_v there_o be_v no_o health_n in_o my_o body_n 15._o psal_n 22.14_o 15._o by_o reason_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o my_o soul_n my_o heart_n within_o i_o be_v like_o melt_a wax_n i_o be_o break_v like_o a_o pitcher_n like_o a_o break_a vessel_n i_o be_o like_o a_o bottle_n in_o the_o smoke_n the_o conscience_n that_o god_n have_v leave_v in_o man_n to_o be_v his_o factor_n bring_v a_o weakness_n incomparable_a there_o be_v nothing_o that_o can_v be_v equal_a unto_o it_o but_o chief_o when_o all_o these_o meet_v together_o as_o in_o some_o they_o do_v and_o when_o old_a age_n begin_v to_o riule_n the_o face_n and_o to_o draw_v the_o complexion_n into_o furrow_n which_o be_v large_o extend_v unto_o beauty_n and_o when_o the_o tresles_fw-mi and_o power_n of_o the_o body_n begin_v to_o fail_v and_o the_o last_o term_n and_o period_n be_v at_o hand_n than_o there_o be_v a_o woeful_a spectacle_n of_o weakness_n even_o when_o a_o man_n can_v go_v nor_o stand_v upon_o his_o supporter_n but_o he_o reel_v and_o fall_v when_o he_o can_v taste_v his_o food_n nor_o smell_v nor_o find_v
the_o least_o relish_n of_o it_o when_o his_o eye_n wax_v dim_a when_o he_o can_v retain_v nothing_o in_o his_o stomach_n but_o he_o cast_v it_o up_o again_o when_o he_o can_v hardly_o speak_v a_o word_n nor_o know_v his_o best_a friend_n but_o all_o the_o organ_n of_o life_n and_o sense_n be_v drown_v in_o death_n this_o be_v that_o poor_a weakness_n which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o it_o be_v sow_o in_o weakness_n when_o he_o be_v cashier_v and_o deprive_v of_o all_o sense_n of_o all_o power_n and_o motion_n and_o nothing_o remain_v but_o a_o base_a and_o desperate_a imbecility_n and_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o infirmity_n as_o that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n in_o flesh_n and_o blood_n that_o ever_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v any_o recovery_n this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o all_o man_n use_v and_o it_o must_v teach_v we_o belove_v to_o weep_v over_o our_o weakness_n to_o think_v of_o it_o in_o the_o degree_n and_o part_n of_o it_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v we_o many_o prognosticant_n of_o it_o every_o sickness_n and_o every_o qualm_n and_o every_o distress_n of_o conscience_n and_o whatsoever_o trouble_v we_o in_o this_o world_n they_o be_v nothing_o but_o so_o many_o calendar_n of_o that_o great_a weakness_n that_o once_o shall_v come_v and_o make_v a_o end_n of_o we_o and_o therefore_o as_o it_o be_v say_v man_n have_v not_o one_o death_n alone_o but_o a_o number_n of_o death_n and_o that_o which_o take_v he_o away_o be_v call_v the_o last_o death_n for_o he_o have_v many_o before_o that_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o sow_v the_o body_n but_o now_o behold_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o great_a god_n he_o will_v raise_v it_o up_o in_o power_n the_o weak_a it_o be_v sow_o the_o strong_a it_o shall_v rise_v and_o this_o weakness_n that_o we_o have_v it_o be_v no_o argument_n of_o discomfort_n nor_o a_o mean_a to_o make_v we_o distrust_v but_o it_o be_v a_o sure_a tie_n to_o bind_v god_n to_o performance_n and_o a_o sure_a evidence_n of_o our_o deliverance_n that_o as_o our_o weakness_n be_v great_a so_o our_o strength_n shall_v be_v much_o more_o infinite_a which_o shall_v be_v wrought_v by_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o subdue_v all_o thing_n to_o himself_o it_o be_v raise_v again_o in_o power_n or_o in_o strength_n for_o it_o be_v raise_v by_o he_o that_o be_v the_o strong_a god_n by_o he_o that_o be_v el_fw-es eli_n elohim_n the_o god_n of_o strength_n of_o might_n and_o of_o majesty_n by_o that_o god_n that_o love_v to_o make_v his_o strength_n see_v in_o our_o weakness_n and_o to_o make_v his_o glory_n perfect_a in_o our_o infirmity_n by_o that_o god_n that_o delight_v to_o work_v in_o contrary_n and_o to_o bring_v fire_n and_o water_n out_o of_o the_o same_o principle_n that_o god_n have_v undertake_v to_o raise_v up_o this_o weak_a body_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v it_o be_v raise_v speak_v in_o the_o present_a tense_n as_o of_o a_o thing_n do_v not_o in_o the_o future_a tense_n it_o shall_v be_v to_o bring_v we_o acquaint_v with_o the_o truth_n before_o it_o be_v do_v and_o to_o make_v we_o assure_v of_o it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v perform_v already_o we_o be_v as_o sure_a indeed_o to_o be_v raise_v to_o that_o glorious_a strength_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v as_o if_o the_o deed_n be_v do_v for_o it_o be_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o great_a god_n in_o which_o those_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v promise_v be_v as_o if_o they_o be_v already_o perform_v because_o he_o be_v true_a that_o have_v promise_v and_o because_o he_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v his_o promise_n he_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v his_o word_n for_o it_o be_v his_o only_a prerogative_n to_o keep_v his_o word_n and_o his_o promise_n for_o ever_o and_o this_o be_v that_o wondrous_a comfort_n that_o he_o have_v give_v unto_o we_o that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o body_n to_o have_v more_o weakness_n than_o it_o have_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o be_v debase_v worse_o by_o infirmity_n than_o it_o be_v yet_o than_o we_o have_v a_o strong_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o strength_n to_o come_v to_o which_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v restore_v for_o the_o weakness_n which_o we_o have_v and_o carry_v about_o we_o the_o great_a it_o be_v the_o strong_a proof_n it_o make_v for_o god_n infinite_a mercy_n in_o the_o deliverance_n of_o we_o for_o as_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n that_o vessel_n and_o barrel_n of_o gunpowder_n lay_v up_o in_o vault_n and_o cell_n the_o more_o weight_n be_v lay_v upon_o they_o the_o great_a pile_n and_o mass_n of_o build_v there_o be_v over_o they_o the_o more_o furious_o and_o strong_o they_o break_v forth_o at_o the_o touch_n and_o train_n of_o the_o least_o fire_n so_o likewise_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o body_n that_o be_v turn_v into_o powder_n &_o to_o dust_n these_o powder-body_n of_o we_o for_o at_o last_o they_o must_v all_o all_o come_v to_o pulverell_n to_o dust_n &_o powder_n these_o body_n the_o more_o weight_n be_v upon_o they_o the_o more_o earth_n the_o more_o difficulty_n and_o the_o great_a weakness_n they_o have_v whereby_o they_o be_v compass_v and_o surround_v it_o make_v way_n for_o the_o more_o strength_n to_o burst_v out_o when_o the_o fire_n of_o god_n shall_v light_v and_o touch_v upon_o it_o when_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o reunion_n of_o the_o spirit_n a_o deduction_n of_o the_o soul_n when_o that_o fire_n shall_v light_v upon_o it_o that_o come_v from_o heaven_n then_o they_o shall_v rise_v in_o a_o glorious_a strength_n for_o the_o more_o they_o have_v be_v hold_v down_o by_o weakness_n the_o more_o they_o shall_v be_v rescue_v and_o ransom_v and_o restore_v to_o a_o great_a vigour_n it_o be_v raise_v in_o power_n and_o strength_n and_o in_o a_o strength_n that_o be_v answerable_a to_o the_o weakness_n that_o where_o the_o weakness_n be_v the_o great_a there_o the_o strength_n shall_v transcend_v in_o greatness_n and_o what_o be_v this_o strength_n it_o be_v reduce_v by_o the_o father_n into_o four_o particular_n first_o st._n austin_n and_o st._n chrysostom_n and_o general_o all_o the_o father_n think_v chrysost_o aug._n chrysost_o that_o the_o strength_n that_o shall_v be_v most_o eminent_a in_o the_o body_n when_o it_o rise_v shall_v be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o motion_n which_o because_o i_o have_v before_o speak_v of_o i_o will_v but_o now_o touch_v it_o as_o the_o top_n of_o the_o flame_n that_o be_v in_o a_o dry_a reed_n it_o run_v upon_o the_o reed_n and_o you_o know_v when_o such_o platt_n of_o ground_n be_v on_o fire_n they_o set_v all_o a_o fire_n about_o they_o so_o the_o body_n of_o man_n it_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o fly_v to_o run_v and_o to_o move_v as_o swift_o as_o the_o flame_n do_v upon_o the_o top_n of_o any_o combustible_a matter_n and_o as_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o star_n and_o the_o angel_n and_o spirit_n of_o man_n do_v never_o sleep_v and_o yet_o be_v still_o in_o motion_n and_o be_v never_o weary_a of_o their_o motion_n so_o the_o body_n that_o shall_v be_v raise_v and_o fit_v again_o unto_o the_o soul_n shall_v be_v without_o labour_n and_o pain_n without_o weakness_n and_o weariness_n and_o shall_v never_o fail_v nor_o faint_v but_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o hold_v out_o in_o a_o everlasting_a motion_n as_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o star_n do_v in_o the_o firmament_n in_o which_o sense_n as_o luther_n luther_n luther_n say_v they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o go_v ten_o thousand_o furlong_n in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n i_o name_n that_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o recreation_n because_o his_o spirit_n be_v wondrous_a cheerful_a and_o merry_a in_o the_o note_n that_o he_o give_v tend_v to_o that_o purpose_n the_o second_o thing_n wherein_o this_o strength_n shall_v consist_v shall_v be_v in_o the_o efficacy_n and_o power_n of_o their_o work_n so_o that_o those_o that_o be_v the_o weak_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n now_o that_o one_o devil_n if_o he_o be_v permit_v be_v able_a to_o wrythe_o the_o neck_n of_o ten_o thousand_o people_n about_o then_o at_o that_o day_n god_n shall_v give_v they_o that_o strength_n of_o body_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o encounter_v a_o whole_a legion_n of_o devil_n which_o shall_v then_o have_v no_o power_n over_o the_o body_n of_o man_n as_o now_o they_o have_v nor_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o possess_v they_o and_o to_o rule_v they_o at_o their_o pleasure_n nor_o to_o make_v monster_n of_o they_o but_o the_o body_n of_o one_o saint_n shall_v put_v to_o flight_n and_o fright_v a_o whole_a legion_n of_o satan_n complice_n and_o this_o mighty_a power_n whereby_o they_o work_v that_o i_o may_v a_o little_a still_o proceed_v
the_o corn_n grow_v thus_o because_o it_o have_v a_o double_a end_n for_o as_o you_o know_v it_o be_v make_v after_o a_o kind_n of_o a_o long_a fashion_n with_o two_o end_n out_o of_o which_o co_fw-la es_fw-la the_o moisture_n and_o juice_n which_o be_v the_o life_n and_o soul_n of_o the_o seed_n for_o if_o those_o end_n shall_v be_v cut_v or_o bite_v off_o the_o seed_n can_v never_o rise_v again_o therefore_o the_o aunt_n and_o pismire_n those_o creature_n that_o hoard_v up_o corn_n against_o the_o winter_n when_o they_o carry_v it_o into_o their_o hole_n where_o they_o lay_v it_o they_o be_v careful_a to_o bite_v off_o both_o end_n of_o the_o corn_n to_o snap_v they_o off_o for_o they_o understand_v by_o nature_n that_o if_o they_o shall_v let_v they_o alone_o the_o corn_n will_v sprout_v and_o so_o they_o can_v not_o live_v on_o it_o god_n have_v give_v they_o this_o instinct_n to_o know_v that_o out_o of_o the_o two_o end_n come_v the_o soul_n and_o life_n and_o juice_n as_o be_v in_o those_o end_v bring_v to_o a_o point_n out_o of_o which_o the_o life_n work_v this_o now_o the_o husbandman_n easy_o understand_v but_o the_o mystery_n concern_v the_o body_n he_o do_v not_o understand_v so_o well_o but_o yet_o he_o must_v make_v the_o argument_n from_o his_o field_n to_o god_n field_n from_o his_o hand_n to_o god_n hand_n from_o the_o blessing_n upon_o the_o corn_n to_o the_o blessing_n upon_o the_o body_n and_o then_o he_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o argument_n will_v follow_v clear_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o the_o lord_n shall_v have_v such_o a_o care_n and_o providence_n of_o a_o poor_a dead_a corn_n that_o fall_v into_o the_o earth_n that_o he_o shall_v raise_v it_o again_o with_o a_o new_a colour_n and_o in_o great_a abundance_n and_o multiply_v it_o that_o it_o grow_v from_o one_o state_n to_o another_o from_o a_o blade_n to_o a_o ear_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o full_a corn_n in_o the_o ear_n be_v it_o possible_a the_o lord_n shall_v thus_o proportion_v and_o suit_n his_o power_n to_o a_o grain_n of_o corn_n that_o fall_v into_o the_o ground_n and_o will_v he_o neglect_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v he_o neglect_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o body_n upon_o which_o he_o have_v draw_v the_o lineament_n of_o christ_n and_o for_o which_o he_o have_v make_v a_o promise_n that_o he_o will_v conform_v it_o unto_o his_o body_n if_o god_n be_v careful_a for_o the_o fowl_n of_o heaven_n and_o for_o the_o lily_n of_o the_o field_n 6.30_o mat_n 6.30_o much_o more_o will_v he_o be_v careful_a for_o we_o oh_o we_o of_o little_a faith_n therefore_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v so_o precious_a in_o god_n sight_n that_o all_o the_o corn_n in_o the_o world_n do_v not_o amount_v to_o that_o sum_n as_o one_o of_o those_o body_n for_o god_n give_v the_o body_n of_o his_o son_n to_o redeem_v the_o body_n of_o the_o mean_a of_o his_o and_o shall_v we_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o that_o be_v so_o rich_a in_o glory_n upon_o the_o weak_a dead_a body_n of_o the_o corn_n will_v be_v much_o more_o glorious_a and_o powerful_a in_o raise_v up_o these_o root_n of_o life_n again_o which_o though_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v dead_a be_v breed_v of_o immortality_n by_o the_o power_n of_o he_o that_o be_v able_a by_o his_o mighty_a power_n to_o subdue_v all_o thing_n to_o himself_o saint_n chrysostome_n ask_v the_o question_n say_v he_o why_o do_v not_o the_o apostle_n rather_o run_v to_o the_o same_o argument_n that_o he_o allege_v to_o the_o philippian_n to_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n 3.21_o phil._n 3.21_o rather_o than_o to_o take_v this_o argument_n for_o when_o he_o treat_v there_o with_o the_o philosopher_n phil._n 3._o concern_v this_o argument_n he_o prove_v it_o from_o that_o main_a point_n because_o god_n can_v do_v all_o thing_n therefore_o he_o will_v do_v this_o from_o whence_o we_o look_v for_o the_o saviour_n who_o shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n and_o make_v they_o like_o his_o glorious_a body_n according_a to_o his_o mighty_a power_n etc._n etc._n but_o say_v he_o the_o apostle_n here_o to_o these_o think_v this_o the_o best_a teach_v hence_o we_o may_v learn_v use_v that_o it_o be_v a_o singular_a kind_n of_o teach_v when_o a_o man_n can_v instruct_v his_o scholar_n by_o the_o trade_n that_o he_o be_v frequent_o exercise_v in_o which_o he_o be_v most_o familiar_a with_o that_o teach_v be_v most_o operative_a and_o work_a the_o most_o impressive_a teach_n that_o can_v be_v so_o our_o lord_n jesus_n teach_v his_o disciple_n that_o be_v fisherman_n out_o of_o their_o own_o trade_n come_v 4.19_o mat._n 4.19_o and_o i_o will_v make_v you_o fisher_n of_o man_n so_o when_o he_o speak_v to_o the_o common_a people_n to_o the_o multitude_n he_o teach_v the_o ploughman_n by_o a_o ploughman_n 13.3_o matth._n 13.3_o a_o sour_a go_v forth_o to_o sow_v seed_n and_o some_o fall_v on_o the_o high_a way_n and_o some_o fall_v on_o thorny_a ground_n and_o some_o on_o good_a ground_n so_o saint_n paul_n act._n 17._o he_o teach_v the_o athenian_n which_o be_v a_o strange_a doctrine_n by_o their_o own_o idol_n 7.23_o act._n 7.23_o you_o man_n of_o athens_n i_o see_v you_o be_v too_o much_o give_v to_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n for_o as_o i_o come_v by_o one_o of_o your_o altar_n i_o see_v it_o write_v there_o to_o the_o unknown_a god_n so_o our_o saviour_n christ_n teach_v man_n to_o make_v they_o friend_n of_o the_o unrighteous_a mammon_n 16.9_o luk._n 16.9_o by_o the_o common_a lucre_n and_o gain_n which_o be_v get_v among_o the_o publican_n and_o in_o s._n john_n baptist_n every_o man_n have_v a_o lesson_n out_o of_o his_o own_o trade_n he_o say_v to_o the_o soldier_n do_v thus_o and_o to_o the_o publican_n 3._o luk._n 3._o do_v thus_o still_o he_o teach_v they_o out_o of_o their_o own_o particular_a call_n and_o action_n to_o teach_v we_o to_o labour_v and_o desire_v in_o this_o manner_n every_o one_o to_o be_v teach_v out_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v common_a and_o obvious_a daily_o to_o we_o for_o therein_o be_v the_o great_a power_n of_o persuasion_n he_o that_o be_v conversant_a about_o the_o fire_n in_o firework_n and_o especial_o such_o as_o work_v in_o glasse-house_n where_o if_o he_o can_v see_v a_o clear_a picture_n of_o hell_n he_o be_v a_o very_a senseless_a man_n and_o very_o brutish_a in_o his_o understanding_n 107.23_o psal_n 107.23_o he_o that_o go_v down_o to_o the_o sea_n in_o ship_n and_o exercise_v his_o business_n in_o great_a water_n if_o he_o can_v see_v a_o wondrous_a act_n of_o god_n providence_n in_o his_o preservation_n he_o understand_v nothing_o he_o that_o be_v a_o student_n and_o do_v not_o see_v in_o his_o book_n and_o the_o difficulty_n of_o learning_n and_o remember_v if_o he_o do_v not_o see_v the_o infinite_a and_o admirable_a blessing_n of_o the_o almighty_a in_o save_v his_o wit_n and_o memory_n and_o in_o raise_v he_o from_o one_o degree_n of_o learning_n to_o another_o he_o understand_v nothing_o in_o our_o ordinary_a meat_n and_o drink_n he_o that_o see_v not_o god_n see_v nothing_o he_o have_v his_o feed_n and_o preservation_n from_o he_o and_o therein_o he_o have_v a_o sign_n of_o his_o everlasting_a refreshment_n and_o preservation_n let_v we_o therefore_o scorn_v no_o art_n nor_o think_v base_o of_o any_o kind_n of_o labour_n and_o good_a exercise_n because_o there_o be_v matter_n of_o good_a doctrine_n lie_v in_o the_o poor_a profession_n that_o can_v be_v that_o which_o thou_o sowe_v i_o will_v prove_v out_o of_o thy_o own_o action_n out_o of_o thy_o own_o trade_n this_o doctrine_n that_o i_o teach_v thou_o that_o propounde_v this_o question_n thou_o be_v not_o more_o simple_a than_o a_o ploughman_n and_o i_o will_v prove_v it_o unto_o thou_o from_o thence_o by_o the_o poor_a labour_n in_o the_o earth_n for_o the_o man_n that_o till_v the_o ground_n he_o be_v of_o less_o account_n than_o a_o artisan_n yet_o even_o the_o very_a ploughman_n shall_v prove_v and_o make_v good_a that_o this_o doctrine_n that_o i_o teach_v be_v probable_a and_o possible_a and_o why_o because_o that_o which_o thou_o sowe_v be_v first_o dead_a and_o then_o it_o be_v quicken_v again_o concern_v the_o die_a of_o the_o corn_n the_o philosopher_n make_v a_o distinction_n because_o they_o know_v not_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n they_o think_v when_o the_o habit_n be_v go_v when_o the_o privation_n have_v put_v out_o the_o habit_n that_o it_o can_v never_o come_v back_o again_o therefore_o they_o think_v that_o the_o corn_n have_v ever_o life_n in_o it_o but_o the_o scripture_n tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v dead_a that_o be_v it_o be_v dead_a to_o we_o
his_o work_n do_v thou_o ever_o see_v the_o whale_n 41._o job_n 41._o do_v thou_o ever_o see_v the_o goodly_a proportion_n that_o he_o have_v and_o the_o carelessness_n and_o contempt_n that_o he_o have_v of_o thou_o and_o of_o all_o the_o weapon_n that_o thou_o can_v bring_v against_o he_o i_o say_v in_o that_o vast_a element_n the_o wonder_n of_o god_n appear_v more_o then_o upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n what_o shoal_n what_o million_o what_o mighty_a army_n of_o fish_n every_o year_n pass_v and_o repass_v the_o sea_n and_o keep_v their_o season_n and_o time_n that_o rather_o than_o man_n shall_v want_v they_o come_v and_o offer_v themselves_o in_o their_o season_n to_o be_v meat_n for_o man_n that_o as_o some_o kind_n of_o bird_n fly_v unto_o we_o at_o certain_a time_n in_o the_o year_n so_o also_o at_o certain_a season_n the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n do_v swim_v unto_o we_o for_o god_n have_v give_v the_o sea_n that_o quality_n that_o invite_v they_o he_o make_v the_o south_n sea_n so_o hot_a that_o the_o fish_n be_v fain_o to_o come_v and_o refresh_v themselves_o in_o the_o north_n and_o every_o where_o where_o they_o come_v they_o fill_v the_o shore_n with_o plenty_n and_o to_o this_o kind_n of_o creature_n god_n have_v give_v a_o flesh_n that_o be_v waterish_a like_v to_o the_o element_n where_o it_o live_v and_o withal_o he_o have_v give_v it_o the_o blessing_n to_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o use_n and_o food_n of_o man_n and_o that_o in_o admirable_a delicacy_n and_o great_a variety_n for_o whereas_o there_o be_v not_o of_o all_o the_o beast_n and_o bird_n upon_o the_o earth_n set_v they_o all_o together_o not_o forty_o kind_n of_o several_a dish_n for_o there_o be_v but_o fourteen_o kind_n of_o beast_n that_o be_v fit_a for_o meat_n and_o but_o twenty_o five_o or_o twenty_o six_o of_o bird_n and_o no_o more_o there_o be_v of_o several_a kind_n of_o fish_n very_o near_o two_o hundred_o that_o be_v wholesome_a and_o good_a for_o the_o food_n and_o use_n of_o man_n and_o this_o food_n it_o be_v not_o ordinary_a but_o to_o some_o body_n and_o in_o some_o country_n it_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o nourish_v and_o faemiliar_a and_o good_a then_o either_o that_o of_o beast_n or_o bird_n therefore_o the_o lord_n have_v glorify_v himself_o in_o this_o creature_n wondrous_o by_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o two_o fish_n he_o wrought_v that_o upon_o the_o fish_n that_o we_o do_v not_o read_v in_o the_o gospel_n he_o wrought_v upon_o flesh_n 9.16_o luk_n 9.16_o for_o in_o that_o country_n as_o their_o fish_n be_v most_o delicate_a so_o their_o meat_n most_o ordinary_o be_v fish_n his_o apostle_n be_v fisherman_n and_o his_o last_o apparition_n to_o they_o be_v in_o give_v they_o a_o dish_n of_o broil_v fish_n upon_o the_o shore_n where_o a_o fire_n be_v kindle_v and_o the_o fish_n be_v lay_v upon_o it_o no_o man_n know_v how_o it_o be_v a_o dish_n which_o the_o lord_n give_v they_o they_o find_v the_o fire_n &_o the_o broil_v fish_n upon_o it_o by_o a_o miraculous_a act_n of_o christ_n hand_n that_o as_o he_o command_v the_o fish_n to_o have_v money_n in_o its_o mouth_n so_o he_o command_v preparation_n to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n for_o his_o apostle_n dinner_n in_o that_o place_n the_o last_o flesh_n he_o speak_v of_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o fowl_n or_o bird_n and_o that_o be_v another_o wonder_n indeed_o and_o of_o great_a variety_n for_o the_o water_n and_o the_o air_n they_o differ_v but_o in_o their_o thickness_n and_o thinness_n the_o air_n be_v a_o thin_a water_n and_o the_o water_n be_v a_o thick_a air_n and_o so_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o fish_n and_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o bird_n do_v differ_v according_o for_o the_o fish_n do_v move_v with_o that_o speed_n that_o they_o may_v be_v say_v to_o fly_v in_o the_o water_n and_o the_o bird_n do_v fly_v with_o that_o facility_n that_o they_o may_v be_v say_v to_o swim_v in_o the_o air_n they_o be_v wondrous_a thing_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v wrought_v in_o these_o two_o element_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o come_v to_o that_o height_n of_o excellency_n for_o natural_a motion_n as_o the_o bird_n which_o can_v be_v in_o any_o place_n they_o can_v rest_v upon_o the_o water_n as_o many_o of_o they_o do_v they_o can_v rest_v upon_o the_o land_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v travel_v in_o the_o air_n and_o in_o a_o short_a space_n of_o time_n they_o can_v overcome_v a_o great_a journey_n to_o see_v that_o a_o massy_a heavy_a body_n shall_v be_v carry_v up_o with_o the_o help_n of_o a_o feather_n of_o a_o wing_n and_o hang_v in_o the_o air_n that_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v see_v they_o that_o have_v never_o see_v it_o before_o he_o will_v think_v they_o shall_v all_o break_v their_o neck_n and_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o be_v free_a from_o danger_n and_o yet_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v they_o such_o a_o poise_n and_o such_o a_o measure_n that_o though_o they_o be_v make_v with_o round_a body_n yet_o their_o spirit_n be_v so_o thin_a and_o fiery_a and_o nimble_a that_o they_o can_v sustain_v themselves_o even_o in_o the_o cloud_n and_o soar_v aloft_o for_o many_o hour_n together_o this_o argue_v also_o the_o power_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o body_n that_o shall_v be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a for_o they_o shall_v have_v that_o ability_n and_o power_n to_o soar_v about_o christ_n 24.28_o mat._n 24.28_o to_o flock_n about_o he_o as_o the_o eagle_n about_o the_o body_n and_o this_o flesh_n of_o bird_n to_o see_v in_o what_o a_o wondrous_a variety_n it_o be_v be_v strange_a for_o the_o cleanness_n and_o uncleanness_n of_o they_o for_o their_o several_a kind_n for_o their_o form_n and_o figure_n and_o proportion_n for_o their_o quantity_n for_o their_o colour_n for_o their_o feather_n in_o some_o goodly_a and_o glorious_a in_o other_o for_o necessity_n in_o other_o their_o feather_n be_v like_o the_o stream_n of_o a_o flag_n rather_o than_o feather_n of_o those_o i_o mean_v that_o be_v heavy_a body_n and_o can_v mount_v aloft_o the_o great_a god_n be_v wondrous_a in_o all_o these_o thing_n and_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o look_v upon_o they_o with_o a_o idle_a eye_n but_o to_o make_v it_o a_o sabbath_n day_n exercise_n to_o instruct_v ourselves_o in_o these_o variety_n and_o to_o praise_v and_o bless_v god_n where_o we_o see_v any_o step_n of_o his_o greatness_n i_o will_v conclude_v in_o a_o word_n resurrection_n 3._o part._n how_o this_o variety_n of_o flesh_n prove_v the_o resurrection_n now_o we_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o all_o this_o it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v one_o kind_n of_o flesh_n of_o man_n another_o of_o beast_n another_o of_o fish_n and_o another_o of_o bird_n but_o what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o purpose_n how_o do_v this_o prove_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n the_o lord_n have_v make_v all_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v type_n and_o pattern_n of_o better_a thing_n that_o be_v reserve_v for_o another_o world_n therefore_o if_o he_o have_v set_v a_o glorious_a variety_n here_o much_o more_o will_v he_o do_v it_o there_o even_o those_o thing_n that_o we_o account_v here_o to_o be_v the_o best_a of_o thing_n they_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o short_a of_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v then_o reveal_v as_o that_o the_o best_a thing_n that_o be_v now_o shall_v come_v short_a by_o far_o of_o the_o worst_a that_o shall_v be_v then_o we_o can_v distinguish_v among_o the_o beast_n which_o be_v best_a and_o which_o be_v worst_a and_o among_o the_o fish_n and_o fowl_n and_o in_o the_o part_n of_o our_o body_n all_o be_v not_o so_o beautiful_a as_o the_o eye_n there_o be_v some_o part_n of_o less_o and_o worse_a respect_n and_o in_o the_o beauty_n and_o colour_n and_o complexion_n of_o the_o face_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n there_o be_v better_a and_o worse_o some_o be_v exceed_v goodly_a some_o be_v extreme_o deform_v and_o we_o make_v a_o difference_n always_o between_o that_o which_o be_v worst_a and_o that_o which_o be_v best_a in_o every_o kind_n so_o the_o apostle_n argue_v thus_o god_n shall_v so_o alter_v and_o change_v the_o thing_n that_o remain_v for_o a_o better_a life_n he_o shall_v so_o alter_v they_o to_o a_o betterment_n and_o perfection_n that_o the_o best_a thing_n that_o be_v here_o shall_v not_o compare_v with_o the_o worst_a thing_n that_o shall_v be_v there_o look_v how_o far_o the_o most_o excellent_a beauty_n excel_v they_o that_o be_v most_o deform_v in_o face_n look_v how_o far_o the_o best_a body_n excel_v the_o worst_a the_o most_o crooked_a and_o impotent_a body_n look_v how_o far_o the_o best_a
that_o be_v in_o so_o great_a a_o variety_n and_o difference_n from_o the_o body_n that_o be_v here_o present_a as_o the_o difference_n be_v great_a between_o heaven_n and_o earth_n between_o the_o star_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o the_o stone_n that_o lie_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o resurrection_n so_o as_o the_o particular_a difference_n be_v between_o the_o heavenly_a body_n one_o star_n differ_v from_o another_o in_o glory_n they_o have_v not_o all_o one_o magnitude_n they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o brightness_n but_o according_a to_o their_o several_a magnitud●s_n so_o be_v their_o shine_a &_o brightness_n so_o the_o lord_n shall_v make_v the_o admirable_a difference_n not_o only_o between_o the_o present_a body_n that_o we_o have_v here_o and_o the_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v raise_v but_o likewise_o between_o the_o body_n themselves_o that_o although_o all_o shall_v be_v full_a yet_o all_o shall_v not_o have_v a_o like_a measure_n but_o every_o one_o shall_v receive_v according_a to_o their_o capacity_n so_o now_o to_o come_v to_o that_o part_n of_o the_o text._n you_o see_v the_o substance_n be_v thus_o much_o he_o tell_v we_o there_o shall_v be_v some_o rare_a quality_n which_o god_n shall_v pour_v upon_o this_o flesh_n which_o it_o can_v never_o attain_v to_o in_o this_o life_n for_o that_o it_o be_v still_o pester_v with_o the_o contrary_n it_o shall_v have_v honour_n it_o shall_v have_v strength_n it_o shall_v have_v nimbleness_n and_o subtlety_n and_o all_o this_o shall_v be_v tie_v with_o a_o golden_a band_n of_o incorruption_n which_o be_v that_o that_o make_v all_o sweet_a and_o full_a for_o to_o have_v good_a thing_n and_o to_o fall_v from_o they_o be_v as_o good_a as_o never_o to_o have_v they_o but_o this_o incorruption_n be_v the_o glorious_a tie_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o crown_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o the_o strength_n there_o shall_v be_v without_o corruption_n their_o beauty_n shall_v be_v incorrupt_a their_o agility_n and_o subtlety_n of_o body_n shall_v be_v incorrupt_a all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v for_o ever_o they_o shall_v be_v preserve_v by_o the_o perpetual_a influence_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o love_n upon_o the_o creature_n this_o be_v the_o height_n and_o depth_n of_o this_o text._n as_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v say_v you_o wonder_v in_o yourselves_o to_o consider_v the_o great_a difference_n that_o shall_v be_v between_o the_o body_n that_o be_v raise_v and_o the_o body_n which_o you_o have_v now_o in_o this_o life_n i_o will_v show_v you_o plain_o how_o it_o shall_v be_v all_o the_o difference_n arise_v from_o certain_a quality_n for_o the_o substance_n there_o be_v nothing_o different_a or_o contrary_a in_o it_o but_o in_o the_o quality_n be_v all_o the_o difference_n and_o contrariety_n and_o i_o will_v show_v you_o it_o by_o such_o quality_n as_o be_v most_o contrary_a one_o to_o another_o for_o what_o be_v more_o contrary_a than_o corruption_n and_o incorruption_n what_o be_v more_o contrary_a than_o honour_n and_o dishonour_v what_o be_v more_o contrary_a than_o weakness_n and_o power_n what_o be_v more_o contrary_a then_o natural_a and_o spiritual_a and_o behold_v god_n shall_v so_o turn_v the_o term_n of_o this_o present_a state_n in_o that_o bless_a world_n that_o whereas_o now_o here_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o mass_n of_o corruption_n than_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o glorious_a piece_n of_o incorruption_n whereas_o now_o it_o be_v compass_v about_o with_o shame_n and_o deformity_n in_o death_n and_o in_o sickness_n in_o consumption_n and_o in_o misery_n then_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o vessel_n of_o honour_n that_o shall_v be_v every_o way_n shine_v and_o glorious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n that_o whereas_o now_o this_o body_n be_v subject_a to_o weakness_n all_o the_o strong_a life_n in_o the_o world_n be_v full_a of_o great_a weakness_n then_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o mirror_n of_o strength_n it_o shall_v have_v a_o arm_n able_a to_o break_v a_o bow_n of_o steel_n that_o whereas_o now_o it_o be_v a_o lumpish_a creature_n than_o it_o shall_v be_v swift_a as_o a_o soar_a eagle_n and_o like_v unto_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n for_o we_o shall_v be_v equal_a to_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n so_o then_o condition_n division_n into_o two_o part_n 1._o a_o description_n 2._o a_o condition_n first_o we_o have_v here_o a_o description_n of_o the_o state_n present_a in_o a_o metaphorical_a word_n &_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o state_n to_o come_v in_o another_o metaphor_n like_a unto_o it_o and_o then_o we_o have_v the_o condition_n and_o several_a manner_n how_o these_o shall_v be_v come_v in_o the_o first_o two_o particular_n 1._o the_o state_n present_a 2._o the_o state_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v concern_v the_o first_o for_o the_o state_n of_o the_o body_n present_a the_o apostle_n say_v it_o be_v sow_v the_o metaphor_n for_o the_o life_n to_o come_v be_v in_o this_o that_o he_o say_v it_o be_v raise_v up_o again_o it_o be_v sow_o in_o corruption_n it_o be_v raise_v again_o in_o incorruption_n contrary_n each_o of_o these_o estate_n difference_v by_o four_o essential_o and_o their_o contrary_n and_o then_o for_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o difference_n he_o make_v they_o four_o wherein_o the_o body_n be_v sow_v and_o there_o be_v four_o contrary_n wherein_o it_o be_v raise_v for_o the_o first_o the_o body_n be_v sow_v in_o rottenness_n it_o be_v sow_v in_o corruption_n for_o the_o second_o it_o be_v sow_v in_o deformity_n and_o ugly_a vision_n that_o this_o corruption_n can_v lie_v hide_v for_o than_o it_o be_v more_o tolerable_a but_o it_o must_v come_v unto_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n a_o man_n friend_n must_v look_v upon_o he_o and_o see_v the_o ghastly_a countenance_n in_o the_o dead_a corpse_n this_o the_o apostle_n call_v dishonour_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n more_o dishonourable_a that_o be_v there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n more_o hateful_a to_o look_v upon_o than_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o a_o man_n three_o he_o say_v it_o be_v sow_o in_o weakness_n that_o be_v in_o such_o a_o miserable_a feebleness_n and_o desolation_n and_o so_o deprive_v of_o all_o strength_n and_o power_n that_o it_o be_v leave_v as_o a_o trample_a stock_n for_o man_n and_o beast_n and_o last_o he_o say_v it_o be_v sow_v a_o natural_a body_n that_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o mere_a elementary_a thing_n nothing_o else_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o to_o look_v on_o these_o be_v the_o woeful_a part_n of_o this_o body_n that_o we_o have_v in_o this_o present_a life_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a god_n shall_v invest_v it_o in_o stead_n of_o corruption_n with_o incorruption_n with_o impassibility_n with_o immortality_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o weakness_n it_o shall_v have_v strength_n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n these_o be_v the_o branch_n of_o the_o text_n of_o these_o brief_o and_o in_o order_n as_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o give_v assistance_n and_o first_o for_o the_o two_o metaphor_n that_o be_v use_v chrysost_n 1_o part._n metaphor_n of_o the_o present_a life_n chrysost_n it_o be_v sow_v it_o be_v a_o good_a observation_n of_o st._n chrysostom_n that_o the_o holy_a apostle_n be_v so_o confident_a in_o the_o matter_n that_o he_o use_v the_o term_n interchangeable_o between_o the_o sow_v of_o the_o corn_n and_o the_o bury_n of_o the_o dead_a body_n for_o say_v he_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o sow_v of_o the_o corn_n he_o use_v the_o phrase_n which_o proper_o belong_v to_o the_o bury_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o bury_n of_o the_o dead_a he_o use_v that_o manner_n of_o speech_n which_o belong_v unto_o the_o corn_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o as_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o can_v have_v be_v speak_v more_o fit_o nor_o no_o comparison_n can_v have_v be_v more_o natural_a than_o this_o which_o he_o take_v from_o corn_n so_o likewise_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o sure_a and_o certain_a then_o that_o the_o one_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v as_o true_o as_o we_o daily_o see_v the_o other_o for_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o corn_n which_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o ground_n he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o quicken_v except_o it_o die_v to_o die_v belong_v proper_o to_o that_o which_o have_v life_n which_o have_v a_o sensible_a life_n although_o there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o death_n to_o in_o other_o thing_n but_o yet_o this_o word_n be_v use_v most_o proper_o to_o signify_v the_o life_n of_o man_n when_o it_o pass_v from_o the_o body_n and_o again_o when_o he_o say_v it_o be_v quicken_v to_o be_v quicken_v most_o proper_o belong_v to_o the_o high_a life_n the_o life_n of_o man_n so_o to_o die_v and_o to_o be_v quicken_v again_o
from_o death_n be_v phrase_n and_o term_n that_o proper_o belong_v to_o the_o life_n of_o man_n yet_o the_o apostle_n use_v it_o here_o in_o speak_v of_o the_o corn_n to_o which_o it_o belong_v not_o proper_o and_o significant_o and_o now_o when_o he_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o bury_n of_o the_o body_n he_o use_v a_o phrase_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o corn_n and_o say_v it_o be_v sow_v and_o it_o be_v raise_v up_o that_o be_v it_o be_v bring_v forth_o in_o that_o variety_n as_o the_o corn_n be_v clothe_v with_o and_o the_o reason_n st._n chrysostom_n say_v be_v this_o because_o we_o be_v as_o sure_a of_o the_o one_o as_o of_o the_o other_o and_o also_o to_o show_v the_o fitness_n of_o the_o compare_v of_o these_o thing_n there_o be_v no_o comparison_n that_o can_v have_v be_v so_o fit_a therefore_o he_o interchange_v the_o phrase_n of_o the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o to_o show_v that_o it_o come_v all_o to_o one_o it_o be_v sow_v the_o body_n of_o man_n have_v two_o kind_n of_o sowing_n in_o this_o world_n one_o be_v when_o he_o be_v sow_v into_o the_o esse_fw-la into_o the_o be_v of_o a_o man_n and_o that_o be_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o his_o mother_n as_o st._n chrysostom_n say_v in_o which_o sense_n it_o be_v say_v that_o such_o and_o such_o descend_v from_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o from_o the_o seed_n of_o such_o progenitor_n another_o sow_v be_v this_o which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o here_o which_o be_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o that_o great_a mother_n the_o earth_n which_o be_v the_o common_a mother_n and_o universal_a nurse_n of_o all_o mankind_n now_o of_o the_o first_o st._n paul_n speak_v not_o here_o although_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o some_o interpreter_n have_v turn_v it_o that_o way_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o prime_a principle_n of_o man_n be_v lay_v in_o corruption_n and_o the_o first_o sation_n or_o sow_v be_v a_o conceal_a and_o secret_a matter_n a_o shameful_a action_n and_o sometime_o a_o dishonest_a thing_n but_o the_o apostle_n have_v no_o intention_n to_o speak_v of_o that_o for_o he_o speak_v here_o by_o way_n of_o allusion_n and_o say_v so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a therefore_o i_o can_v follow_v those_o extravagancy_n but_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o resurrection_n it_o be_v certain_a the_o apostle_n mean_v of_o that_o sow_v of_o god_n when_o he_o sow_v the_o body_n in_o the_o ground_n earth_n to_o earth_n ash_n to_o ash_n as_o st._n chrysostom_n say_v chrysost_n chrysost_n that_o be_v the_o best_a sow_v by_o far_o for_o the_o first_o be_v a_o sow_v to_o misery_n and_o weakness_n to_o live_v in_o trouble_n and_o cross_n and_o affliction_n in_o this_o world_n even_o as_o job_n say_v 14.1_o job_n 14.1_o man_n that_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o woman_n have_v but_o a_o short_a time_n to_o live_v and_o be_v full_a of_o misery_n but_o this_o sow_v of_o god_n of_o his_o child_n in_o the_o grave_n of_o which_o this_o text_n as_o also_o this_o chapter_n must_v be_v understand_v it_o be_v a_o sow_v not_o to_o a_o life_n of_o misery_n but_o to_o a_o state_n of_o glory_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o trouble_n after_o that_o but_o a_o quiet_a and_o perfect_a rest_n and_o renovation_n when_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n shall_v appear_v so_o then_o it_o be_v sow_v he_o use_v this_o word_n upon_o purpose_n to_o take_v from_o we_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n the_o fear_n and_o trouble_v of_o that_o great_a monster_n and_o bugg_v of_o the_o world_n for_o as_o much_o as_o to_o die_v be_v a_o hopeful_a thing_n as_o the_o sow_v of_o the_o seed_n be_v a_o hopeful_a action_n sow_v be_v a_o word_n of_o confidence_n and_o expectation_n as_o we_o see_v 1_o cor._n 9_o 11._o 1_o cor._n 9.10_o 11._o that_o he_o that_o sow_n may_v sow_v in_o hope_n and_o he_o that_o reap_v may_v reap_v in_o hope_n and_o he_o that_o ear_n may_v ear_n in_o hope_n all_o these_o be_v word_n of_o hope_n word_n that_o be_v very_o full_a of_o contentment_n to_o the_o mind_n for_o by_o that_o mean_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a expectation_n of_o gain_n and_o advantage_n it_o be_v sow_v that_o be_v when_o a_o man_n die_v he_o be_v full_a of_o hope_n there_o be_v a_o bless_a hope_n that_o wait_v and_o attend_v upon_o he_o as_o job_n say_v the_o just_a man_n the_o good_a man_n have_v hope_n in_o his_o death_n and_o the_o faithful_a with_o faithful_a abraham_n they_o hope_v against_o hope_n that_o when_o desperation_n assail_v he_o than_o he_o be_v strong_a in_o his_o hope_n to_o god_n it_o be_v sow_v therefore_o be_v be_v not_o cast_v away_o it_o be_v not_o bring_v to_o nothing_o it_o be_v not_o destroy_v but_o it_o be_v sow_v it_o be_v lay_v up_o in_o a_o faithful_a hand_n it_o be_v lay_v up_o as_o a_o depositum_fw-la and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o it_o be_v put_v forth_o to_o interest_n and_o have_v a_o great_a income_n again_o it_o be_v sow_v and_o it_o be_v sow_v in_o a_o due_a place_n in_o the_o field_n of_o god_n in_o god_n acre_n as_o in_o many_o place_n in_o germany_n the_o churchyard_n be_v call_v god_n acre_n it_o be_v not_o cast_v into_o the_o water_n it_o be_v not_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n to_o be_v burn_v nor_o to_o the_o thorn_n and_o weed_n to_o choke_v it_o it_o be_v not_o leave_v to_o be_v pick_v by_o the_o fowl_n of_o heaven_n but_o it_o be_v sow_v in_o that_o place_n where_o god_n have_v purpose_v it_o shall_v repose_v and_o rest_n yea_o it_o be_v give_v upon_o tale_n and_o the_o earth_n shall_v restore_v and_o give_v up_o her_o dead_a she_o shall_v surrender_v every_o body_n which_o god_n have_v commit_v unto_o she_o it_o be_v sow_v with_o the_o diligent_a hand_n of_o the_o great_a husbandman_n the_o lord_n almighty_a he_o that_o cast_v his_o seed_n with_o judgement_n and_o lay_v it_o up_o with_o knowledge_n and_o great_a wisdom_n joh._n 15._o 15.1_o joh._n 15.1_o say_v christ_n i_o be_o the_o vine_n and_o my_o father_n be_v the_o husbandman_n the_o lord_n therefore_o take_v this_o seed_n and_o he_o so_o lay_v it_o up_o where_o it_o may_v bring_v the_o most_o profit_n and_o rise_v with_o the_o rich_a advantage_n it_o be_v sow_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o great_a mother_n the_o earth_n which_o be_v fruitful_a and_o abound_v in_o plenty_n which_o receive_v the_o first_o and_o late_a rain_n 11.14_o deut_n 11.14_o and_o set_v the_o valley_n thick_a with_o corn_n 65.14_o psal_n 65.14_o that_o it_o make_v man_n rejoice_v and_o sing_v in_o such_o a_o place_n be_v this_o semination_n this_o sow_v it_o be_v sow_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n it_o be_v sow_v in_o the_o expectation_n of_o hope_n &_o profit_n this_o word_n the_o apostle_n use_v to_o allure_v we_o to_o familiarity_n with_o that_o which_o of_o necessity_n we_o must_v undergo_v man_n must_v forgo_v this_o tabernacle_n but_o it_o be_v grievous_a to_o they_o to_o think_v of_o it_o they_o be_v perplex_v and_o distress_a when_o such_o melancholy_a thought_n come_v in_o their_o head_n let_v we_o shake_v hand_n therefore_o with_o that_o to_o the_o which_o we_o must_v needs_o bow_v at_o the_o last_o and_o let_v we_o conceive_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n which_o follow_v we_o even_o unto_o our_o death_n and_o open_v a_o gate_n of_o hope_n and_o make_v we_o prisoner_n of_o hope_n and_o give_v passage_n to_o the_o performance_n of_o those_o bless_a promise_n wherein_o we_o be_v instruct_v and_o whereto_o we_o be_v call_v by_o the_o lure_n of_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n so_o much_o for_o that_o metaphor_n now_o the_o other_o for_o the_o body_n to_o come_v chrysost_n 2._o the_o metaphor_n for_o the_o life_n to_o come_v chrysost_n it_o be_v very_o significant_a it_o be_v raise_v up_o say_v st._n chrysostom_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o say_v it_o grow_v up_o of_o itself_o but_o it_o be_v raise_v up_o as_o be_v do_v by_o another_o so_o indeed_o our_o redemption_n it_o be_v not_o wrought_v by_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v inherent_a in_o we_o but_o it_o be_v a_o external_a action_n that_o come_v from_o god_n it_o be_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n that_o work_v on_o we_o and_o raise_v we_o up_o it_o be_v raise_v therefore_o by_o the_o power_n of_o he_o that_o raise_v christ_n from_o the_o dead_a 8.11_o rom._n 8.11_o it_o be_v raise_v by_o he_o that_o raise_v for_o we_o a_o horn_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o house_n of_o his_o servant_n david_n 1.69_o luke_n 1.69_o 11.17_o john_n 11.17_o it_o be_v raise_v as_o lazarus_n be_v raise_v after_o he_o have_v be_v four_o day_n in_o the_o grave_n it_o be_v raise_v as_o a_o house_n be_v raise_v from_o the_o foundation_n it_o be_v raise_v as_o the_o temple_n
away_o from_o he_o yea_o and_o his_o dear_a belove_a shall_v stop_v their_o nose_n at_o he_o this_o shall_v teach_v we_o to_o humble_v ourselves_o in_o this_o disconsolation_n use_v and_o to_o add_v this_o to_o all_o the_o honour_n we_o have_v in_o the_o world_n if_o we_o have_v any_o or_o do_v yet_o look_v for_o any_o this_o dishonour_n of_o death_n be_v a_o cool_a card_n that_o shall_v make_v a_o man_n moderate_a in_o all_o his_o proceed_n it_o shall_v make_v he_o fearful_a in_o all_o his_o do_n it_o shall_v make_v he_o understand_v that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o conceit_n and_o pretence_n of_o honour_n but_o to_o qualify_v himself_o with_o this_o compare_v his_o dishonour_n which_o the_o lord_n will_v lay_v upon_o sinful_a flesh_n there_o be_v nothing_o so_o honourable_a but_o it_o shall_v be_v cover_v with_o shame_n and_o dishonour_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n when_o we_o shall_v depart_v this_o world_n it_o be_v sow_v in_o dishonour_n well!_o although_o it_o be_v thus_o yet_o the_o lord_n have_v a_o help_n for_o this_o again_o it_o shall_v be_v raise_v after_o another_o manner_n it_o shall_v be_v raise_v in_o honour_n in_o great_a glory_n as_o disgrace_v and_o dishonour_n be_v the_o worst_a of_o punishment_n so_o honour_n and_o grace_n and_o glory_n again_o be_v the_o best_a of_o preferment_n there_o be_v nothing_o so_o sweet_a unto_o we_o as_o that_o to_o be_v above_o other_o to_o be_v belove_v of_o other_o to_o be_v admire_v of_o other_o and_o to_o be_v serve_v of_o other_o this_o be_v that_o sweet_a breath_n of_o life_n and_o that_o sweet_a contentment_n that_o shall_v fill_v we_o with_o marrow_n and_o fatness_n and_o this_o god_n purpose_v to_o pour_v upon_o these_o dishonourable_a body_n that_o die_v so_o beastly_a and_o deform_a that_o they_o be_v trample_v on_o by_o the_o foot_n of_o beast_n if_o they_o lie_v abroad_o and_o if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n where_o we_o usual_o bury_v the_o poor_a and_o base_a of_o man_n tread_v upon_o they_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n shall_v raise_v it_o at_o that_o day_n in_o such_o honour_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v like_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n it_o shall_v be_v like_o the_o sun_n in_o glory_n it_o shall_v be_v like_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n it_o shall_v be_v like_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 3.21_o phil._n 3.21_o for_o he_o shall_v change_v these_o vile_a body_n and_o make_v they_o like_o his_o glorious_a body_n according_a to_o his_o mighty_a power_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o subdue_v all_o thing_n to_o himself_o phil._n 3.21_o now_o by_o the_o contrary_a dishonour_n we_o may_v see_v that_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v consist_v 1._o in_o a_o goodly_a stature_n 2._o in_o a_o perfect_a beauty_n 3._o in_o a_o gracious_a fragrancy_n in_o the_o stature_n of_o the_o body_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o uncomelinesse_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o crookedness_n there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o want_v that_o can_v be_v require_v as_o we_o use_v to_o say_v of_o image_n that_o be_v draw_v in_o wax_n that_o they_o be_v complete_a so_o likewise_o god_n shall_v so_o paint_v his_o image_n in_o the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n when_o they_o shall_v rise_v that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o find_v it_o so_o in_o any_o thing_n but_o in_o the_o exemplar_n in_o the_o masterpiece_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v nothing_o else_o that_o shall_v be_v more_o glorious_a as_o in_o those_o happy_a country_n where_o the_o leaf_n be_v always_o green_a and_o the_o earth_n be_v always_o bud_a and_o bring_v forth_o so_o the_o body_n of_o god_n saint_n as_o st._n austin_n say_v shall_v have_v that_o greenness_n and_o vigorousnesse_n of_o incorruption_n possess_v they_o total_o augustine_n st._n augustine_n and_o last_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v of_o a_o gracious_a fragrancy_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o that_o also_o may_v be_v oppose_v to_o the_o stench_n of_o these_o carcase_n the_o dead_a body_n be_v dishonour_v in_o nothing_o more_o then_o by_o a_o caryon-like_a smell_n for_o thereby_o it_o differ_v nothing_o from_o a_o beast_n nay_o it_o be_v far_o worse_a than_o a_o beast_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o putrify_v as_o the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n there_o be_v nothing_o bring_v forth_o such_o ugly_a thing_n as_o that_o for_o out_o of_o the_o brain_n come_v scorpion_n and_o snake_n and_o out_o of_o the_o flesh_n toad_n and_o serpent_n which_o be_v not_o usual_a among_o the_o beast_n for_o some_o of_o they_o bring_v forth_o bee_n and_o some_o wasp_n but_o of_o age_n and_o eumine_v and_o divers_a other_o it_o be_v report_v that_o scorpion_n and_o snake_n come_v out_o of_o their_o head_n after_o they_o be_v dead_a and_o wreathe_v about_o their_o face_n and_o we_o know_v by_o woeful_a experience_n of_o late_a time_n of_o divers_a gentleman_n that_o be_v trouble_v with_o such_o a_o woeful_a thing_n that_o they_o have_v worm_n in_o their_o brain_n and_o in_o their_o entrails_n i_o say_v therefore_o answerable_a to_o this_o as_o the_o misery_n be_v great_a to_o which_o the_o body_n of_o man_n be_v subject_a great_a than_o other_o creature_n because_o he_o be_v the_o only_a sinner_n so_o at_o that_o day_n god_n shall_v make_v a_o abundant_a recompense_n by_o pour_v upon_o it_o the_o spring_n of_o beauty_n and_o sweetness_n and_o fragrancy_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v as_o a_o garden_n of_o spice_n in_o the_o nostril_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o saint_n every_o saint_n shall_v also_o be_v as_o a_o glass_n to_o each_o other_o and_o every_o one_o shall_v see_v his_o fellow_n beauty_n and_o they_o shall_v reflect_v one_o upon_o another_o in_o the_o joy_n and_o gladness_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o see_v the_o wondrous_a work_n which_o god_n have_v wrought_v upon_o this_o piece_n of_o frailty_n and_o even_o as_o jacob_n be_v as_o the_o smell_n of_o a_o field_n when_o he_o come_v near_o his_o father_n behold_v say_v isaac_n i_o smell_v the_o smell_n of_o my_o son_n as_o the_o smell_n of_o a_o field_n 27.27_o gen._n 27.27_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v bless_v there_o be_v nothing_o more_o delightful_a to_o the_o sense_n then_o a_o bloom_a field_n of_o new_a corn_n and_o of_o sweet_a grass_n and_o flower_n that_o rise_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o therefore_o the_o holy_a man_n compare_v his_o son_n to_o a_o field_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v bless_v much_o more_o shall_v these_o be_v fragrant_a field_n the_o lord_n blessing_n they_o with_o infinite_a variety_n of_o goodness_n and_o of_o grace_n and_o sweetness_n that_o the_o field_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v more_o pleasant_a than_o the_o field_n and_o garden_n of_o man_n and_o then_o all_o the_o paradise_n in_o this_o world_n and_o as_o the_o head_n of_o this_o company_n be_v describe_v cant._n 1._o 4._o cant._n 1.3_o 4._o draw_v i_o and_o i_o will_v run_v after_o thou_o in_o the_o odour_n of_o thy_o anointment_n note_v unto_o we_o the_o sweetness_n that_o be_v incorporate_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o we_o read_v also_o of_o st._n paul_n 19.12_o act_n 19.12_o that_o by_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n he_o have_v napkin_n and_o handkerchief_n bring_v from_o his_o body_n that_o be_v of_o such_o sweetness_n that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o cure_v disease_n so_o also_o we_o may_v understand_v what_o shall_v be_v the_o variety_n there_o from_o the_o sweetness_n that_o be_v now_o in_o the_o body_n arise_v from_o the_o mixture_n of_o the_o blood_n in_o the_o vein_n which_o make_v a_o perfect_a sympathy_n and_o harmony_n the_o lord_n at_o that_o day_n shall_v make_v all_o thing_n much_o more_o abundant_a as_o the_o church_n also_o be_v describe_v by_o the_o sweetness_n of_o her_o clothes_n in_o the_o canticle_n 1.14_o cant._n 1.14_o my_o spouse_n say_v christ_n be_v as_o a_o garden_n of_o myrrh_n or_o of_o spice_n and_o her_o breast_n be_v like_o the_o cluster_n of_o grape_n and_o like_o the_o fruit_n of_o engedi_n so_o every_o man_n and_o woman_n shall_v be_v although_o here_o they_o be_v sickly_a and_o subject_a to_o never_o so_o many_o infirmity_n and_o disease_n in_o this_o life_n yet_o the_o lord_n shall_v so_o alter_v the_o body_n of_o those_o that_o serve_v he_o here_o in_o that_o bless_a estate_n there_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o find_v a_o singular_a proportion_n of_o beauty_n of_o strength_n and_o of_o fragrancy_n that_o all_o the_o just_a shall_v be_v term_v the_o field_n and_o paradise_n which_o god_n have_v bless_v finis_fw-la sermon_n on_o 1_o cor._n 15._o of_o the_o resurrection_n 1_o cor._n 15.43_o it_o be_v sow_v in_o weakness_n it_o be_v raise_v in_o power_n it_o be_v sow_o a_o natural_a body_n it_o be_v raise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n there_o be_v a_o natural_a body_n and_o there_o be_v
our_o life_n in_o our_o inclination_n in_o our_o declination_n in_o our_o death_n in_o our_o grave_n and_o sepulchre_n in_o all_o thing_n we_o be_v like_o our_o first_o parent_n adam_n which_o be_v the_o father_n of_o our_o nature_n as_o christ_n be_v the_o father_n of_o our_o state_n in_o grace_n therefore_o as_o at_o the_o first_o we_o be_v make_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n as_o adam_n be_v we_o be_v make_v out_o of_o a_o base_a matter_n as_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n make_v he_o out_o of_o the_o red_a earth_n 119.73_o psal_n 119.73_o so_o say_v david_n thy_o hand_n have_v make_v i_o and_o fashion_v i_o out_o of_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o substance_n be_v we_o make_v we_o be_v like_o he_o in_o our_o beginning_n adam_n be_v leave_v to_o a_o kind_n of_o freewill_n to_o go_v this_o way_n of_o that_o way_n which_o freewill_n he_o have_v entire_a and_o may_v have_v keep_v it_o if_o he_o will_v in_o our_o infancy_n we_o be_v partly_o leave_v that_o way_n but_o custom_n and_o corruption_n lead_v we_o another_o way_n for_o we_o be_v forestall_v by_o inbred_a corruption_n by_o sin_n and_o we_o be_v mislead_v by_o the_o corrupt_a custom_n in_o the_o world_n so_o that_o child_n be_v corrupt_v before_o they_o be_v sensible_a otherwise_o child_n have_v that_o in_o they_o above_o man_n that_o they_o may_v say_v this_o course_n i_o will_v take_v and_o this_o course_n i_o will_v not_o take_v for_o when_o a_o man_n take_v a_o course_n to_o be_v vicious_a and_o to_o fall_v into_o sin_n he_o can_v be_v so_o free_a as_o he_o that_o have_v a_o pure_a mind_n which_o be_v like_a unto_o a_o white_a paper_n wherein_o there_o be_v nothing_o write_v for_o they_o that_o fall_v into_o evil_n they_o set_v such_o blot_n upon_o they_o that_o can_v be_v get_v out_o without_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o indeed_o in_o the_o fair_a paper_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o child_n there_o be_v that_o corruption_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n must_v wash_v it_o out_o even_o that_o original_a sin_n though_o they_o be_v free_a from_o actual_a therefore_o in_o this_o we_o be_v like_a unto_o adam_n mutable_a and_o changeable_a nay_o our_o condition_n be_v worse_a than_o he_o for_o he_o have_v a_o power_n not_o to_o sin_n and_o we_o have_v no_o power_n but_o to_o sin_n as_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o this_o flesh_n three_o in_o the_o inclination_n of_o our_o mind_n as_o adam_n grow_v he_o have_v a_o inclination_n to_o eat_v and_o to_o drink_v a_o necessity_n of_o increase_v in_o the_o world_n of_o steep_a and_o work_v and_o the_o like_a so_o in_o these_o thing_n we_o grow_v and_o many_o man_n be_v so_o set_v upon_o these_o worldly_a thing_n that_o they_o common_o fail_v god_n and_o their_o soul_n in_o other_o thing_n and_o for_o our_o decline_a age_n we_o be_v like_a unto_o he_o although_o he_o live_v in_o strength_n a_o long_a time_n yet_o at_o last_o he_o fail_v of_o his_o strength_n and_o of_o his_o wit_n and_o at_o length_n come_v to_o be_v turn_v to_o dust_n to_o nothing_o so_o it_o be_v with_o we_o as_o be_v the_o earthly_a so_o be_v they_o that_o be_v earthly_a we_o must_v follow_v his_o condition_n we_o can_v avoid_v it_o we_o must_v be_v like_a unto_o he_o last_o as_o adam_n die_v and_o go_v to_o his_o grave_n from_o which_o he_o be_v take_v earth_n to_o earth_n dust_n to_o dust_n and_o rot_v in_o the_o earth_n and_o there_o he_o lie_v now_o and_o have_v lyen_fw-we for_o the_o space_n of_o almost_o 5000._o year_n in_o the_o dust_n so_o the_o lord_n will_v bring_v our_o body_n by_o the_o common_a sentence_n which_o he_o have_v pronounce_v against_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n he_o will_v bring_v they_o to_o the_o same_o state_n for_o as_o be_v the_o earthly_a so_o be_v they_o that_o be_v earthly_a in_o their_o birth_n in_o their_o life_n in_o their_o inclination_n in_o their_o death_n in_o their_o grave_n and_o in_o all_o the_o part_n and_o passage_n of_o this_o mortal_a race_n they_o be_v all_o alike_o each_o to_o other_o but_o the_o lord_n who_o be_v to_o give_v a_o new_a life_n of_o grace_n which_o begin_v here_o and_o shall_v be_v complete_v in_o the_o life_n of_o glory_n which_o shall_v be_v manifest_v hereafter_o he_o shall_v conform_v his_o member_n unto_o he_o more_o than_o adam_n do_v he_o for_o if_o we_o be_v miserable_a because_o of_o the_o first_o adam_n much_o more_o shall_v we_o be_v glorious_a because_o of_o christ_n the_o second_o adam_n and_o if_o a_o weak_a cause_n be_v able_a to_o conform_v his_o member_n unto_o he_o a_o strong_a cause_n shall_v be_v much_o more_o able_a therefore_o as_o the_o misery_n of_o man_n be_v derive_v from_o adam_n to_o his_o posterity_n so_o the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v derive_v and_o exhibit_v and_o set_v forth_o and_o fulfil_v from_o christ_n as_o from_o a_o root_n and_o fountain_n to_o all_o those_o that_o follow_v for_o from_o his_o fullness_n we_o have_v all_o receive_v even_o grace_n for_o grace_n 16._o john_n 1_o 16._o therefore_o he_o say_v those_o that_o be_v spiritual_a shall_v be_v such_o as_o he_o that_o be_v spiritual_a as_o christ_n be_v now_o in_o his_o glorious_a body_n for_o this_o must_v be_v take_v of_o the_o glorify_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o of_o his_o mortal_a body_n for_o he_o have_v a_o mortal_a body_n in_o which_o he_o die_v but_o when_o it_o be_v raise_v again_o it_o be_v a_o glorify_a body_n and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n so_o in_o the_o common_a resurrection_n we_o shall_v be_v like_a unto_o he_o by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n that_o work_v all_o in_o all_o and_o if_o adam_n can_v convey_v unto_o we_o a_o inheritance_n of_o misery_n and_o weakness_n and_o decline_v much_o more_o shall_v the_o lord_n convey_v a_o strong_a inheritance_n of_o glory_n and_o beauty_n and_o of_o all_o that_o we_o can_v desire_v and_o that_o can_v fill_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n all_o which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v make_v a_o promise_n and_o tender_v of_o therefore_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v comfort_v yourselves_o in_o these_o word_n 4.18_o 1_o thes_n 4.18_o even_o in_o observe_v the_o order_n that_o god_n will_v have_v and_o be_v content_a that_o your_o natural_n may_v pass_v away_o that_o your_o spiritual_n may_v succeed_v for_o we_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v bear_v before_o we_o can_v be_v bear_v anew_o of_o water_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o must_v be_v bear_v first_o of_o the_o will_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n we_o must_v be_v bear_v after_o again_o by_o the_o sacred_a laver_n of_o regeneration_n not_o of_o the_o will_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n 1.13_o john_n 1.13_o but_o of_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o as_o st._n austin_n say_v we_o can_v not_o die_v aug._n aug._n except_o we_o have_v be_v the_o member_n of_o adam_n nor_o we_o can_v not_o rise_v again_o except_o we_o be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n but_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o ordain_v by_o god_n that_o we_o can_v look_v for_o the_o one_o except_o we_o be_v content_a to_o taste_v of_o the_o other_o the_o lord_n make_v not_o the_o angel_n and_o we_o in_o one_o condition_n they_o be_v make_v in_o their_o full_a perfection_n at_o the_o first_o therefore_o some_o of_o they_o fall_v from_o that_o to_o be_v devil_n some_o of_o they_o continue_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o be_v confirm_v for_o ever_o but_o man_n be_v not_o so_o make_v but_o as_o a_o scholar_n to_o come_v by_o divers_a degree_n to_o grow_v forward_o from_o rudiment_n and_o principle_n unto_o further_a perfection_n that_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n may_v be_v see_v in_o his_o success_n and_o course_n in_o his_o bring_n on_o and_o production_n that_o he_o appoint_v for_o man_n use_v therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v content_v with_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n to_o rejoice_v in_o it_o and_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o suffer_v the_o cup_n which_o god_n have_v put_v into_o our_o hand_n even_o the_o cup_n of_o death_n when_o the_o lord_n shall_v call_v for_o we_o and_o we_o ought_v also_o to_o arm_v ourselves_o with_o this_o exceed_a comfort_n that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a passage_n and_o way_n which_o god_n have_v make_v for_o that_o glorious_a state_n hereafter_o for_o if_o there_o be_v natural_a there_o shall_v be_v spiritual_a and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o nature_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o spirit_n therefore_o this_o misery_n and_o weakness_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o door_n and_o a_o way_n unto_o greatness_n and_o strength_n and_o ability_n this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o bless_a apostle_n say_v 2_o cor._n 11._o
to_o thousand_o and_o million_o in_o the_o world_n that_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o although_o there_o be_v sin_n now_o in_o our_o mortal_a body_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o reign_v it_o command_v we_o not_o to_o every_o thing_n it_o find_v we_o not_o as_o the_o centurion_n servant_n to_o go_v when_o it_o say_v go_v but_o it_o be_v in_o many_o thing_n break_v and_o dissipate_v and_o the_o lord_n have_v beat_v sathan_n under_o our_o foot_n that_o be_v the_o usual_a work_n of_o sathan_n sin_n and_o foul_a impression_n in_o your_o soul_n and_o understanding_n thus_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v we_o victory_n over_o sin_n in_o himself_o full_o in_o we_o it_o be_v begin_v but_o for_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n afterward_o to_o discourse_n the_o lord_n himself_o be_v free_a from_o all_o sin_n he_o be_v therefore_o a_o conqueror_n over_o that_o pestilent_a viper_n that_o poison_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o he_o give_v his_o people_n the_o infusion_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o guide_v they_o by_o the_o which_o original_a sin_n be_v weaken_v the_o sire_n be_v abate_v and_o allay_v the_o edge_n of_o sin_n be_v lessen_v the_o last_o be_v over_z the_o law_n that_o still_o be_v the_o great_a enemy_n that_o still_o lay_v before_o we_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n do_v this_o and_o live_v do_v that_o and_o be_v damn_v follow_v this_o course_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v damn_v for_o ever_o if_o thou_o be_v a_o drunkard_n if_o thou_o be_v lustful_a if_o thou_o be_v covetous_a and_o worldly_a if_o thou_o be_v revengeful_a and_o malicious_a the_o sentence_n of_o damnation_n be_v pass_v upon_o thou_o that_o be_v all_o the_o comfort_n we_o have_v by_o the_o law_n but_o christ_n have_v give_v we_o victory_n over_o this_o enemy_n which_o follow_v we_o at_o the_o heel_n when_o we_o do_v amiss_o and_o still_o put_v we_o into_o qualm_n of_o conscience_n for_o our_o misdeed_n and_o curb_n and_o bridle_v we_o by_o the_o check_n of_o conscience_n that_o if_o a_o man_n can_v but_o see_v the_o end_n of_o these_o foul_a action_n as_o he_o see_v the_o beginning_n he_o will_v never_o do_v they_o because_o there_o be_v no_o equality_n between_o the_o short_a time_n of_o sin_v and_o the_o eternity_n of_o punishment_n but_o against_o all_o this_o christ_n have_v give_v we_o victory_n for_o he_o have_v fulfil_v the_o law_n of_o god_n he_o have_v stop_v the_o crimination_n he_o he_o have_v stay_v all_o those_o slander_n and_o all_o those_o accusation_n that_o the_o devil_n will_v make_v by_o the_o law_n or_o that_o those_o that_o have_v be_v curious_a observer_n of_o the_o law_n will_v make_v and_o those_o accusation_n that_o a_o evil_a conscience_n will_v make_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o have_v enlighten_v it_o he_o have_v silence_v all_o these_o in_o this_o life_n but_o the_o consummation_n of_o this_o we_o must_v understand_v be_v to_o come_v when_o this_o corruptible_a shall_v put_v on_o incorruption_n and_o this_o mortal_a shall_v put_v on_o immortality_n they_o be_v now_o go_v before_o in_o the_o head_n they_o shall_v then_o follow_v in_o the_o body_n say_v st._n austin_n aug._n aug._n whatsoever_o christ_n have_v do_v in_o his_o own_o body_n it_o shall_v follow_v in_o our_o mortal_a body_n when_o he_o shall_v change_v they_o 15._o 1_o cor._n 15._o and_o make_v they_o like_v unto_o his_o own_o glorious_a body_n according_a to_o his_o mighty_a power_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o subdue_v all_o thing_n to_o himself_o this_o be_v that_o goodly_a victory_n in_o the_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v interest_v we_o all_o to_o conclude_v and_o refer_v the_o rest_n till_o the_o next_o time_n i_o beseech_v you_o belove_v in_o the_o lord_n let_v we_o consider_v what_o part_n we_o have_v in_o this_o victory_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o insult_v and_o triumph_v in_o a_o vain_a presumption_n in_o blessing_n that_o pertain_v not_o to_o we_o but_o if_o we_o think_v we_o have_v the_o victory_n let_v we_o labour_n to_o find_v it_o and_o so_o enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o our_o own_o soul_n who_o it_o be_v that_o overcom_v 3_o apoc._n 3_o to_o he_o that_o overcom_v will_v i_o give_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n to_o he_o that_o overcom_v will_v i_o give_v a_o white_a stone_n etc._n etc._n and_o what_o must_v he_o overcome_v he_o must_v overcome_v himself_o and_o all_o his_o passion_n he_o must_v overcome_v the_o fear_n of_o death_n the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o law_n a_o fearful_a encounter_n and_o a_o great_a troop_n of_o enemy_n be_v lay_v open_a the_o lord_n strengthen_v poor_a david_n that_o he_o may_v be_v able_a to_o encounter_v with_o this_o mighty_a goliath_n for_o it_o seem_v that_o hell_n itself_o be_v open_a upon_o he_o when_o therefore_o we_o do_v give_v ourselves_o that_o liberty_n as_o to_o do_v what_o ourselves_o listen_v against_o the_o good_a will_n and_o command_v of_o god_n let_v we_o not_o think_v to_o have_v any_o part_n in_o this_o victory_n we_o be_v rather_o as_o so_o many_o conquer_a slave_n and_o vassal_n that_o lie_v at_o the_o command_n of_o death_n that_o whereas_o we_o shall_v tread_v satan_n under_o our_o foot_n satan_n trample_v we_o under_o he_o and_o make_v we_o the_o most_o base_a and_o vile_a creature_n in_o the_o world_n thou_o that_o have_v enough_o in_o this_o world_n and_o yet_o can_v not_o tell_v when_o thou_o have_v enough_o but_o still_o be_v distract_v with_o envious_a desire_n and_o make_v thyself_o great_a by_o other_o man_n fall_n that_o raise_v thy_o own_o fortune_n by_o other_o man_n ruin_n that_o use_v any_o mean_n good_a or_o bad_a by_o hook_n or_o by_o crook_n to_o advance_v thy_o own_o estate_n to_o make_v thyself_o rich_a and_o set_v thyself_o only_o to_o the_o study_n of_o the_o idol_n mammon_n what_o kind_n of_o victory_n or_o what_o hope_n of_o conquest_n can_v thou_o have_v in_o that_o great_a and_o mighty_a victory_n which_o we_o pretend_v the_o lord_n jesus_n have_v give_v we_o sure_o none_o there_o be_v no_o such_o galleyslave_n in_o the_o world_n as_o a_o man_n that_o be_v give_v and_o addict_v to_o his_o wealth_n and_o riches_n in_o this_o present_a life_n for_o it_o pierce_v man_n through_o with_o many_o sorrow_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v they_o that_o will_v be_v rich_a 6._o 1_o tim._n 6._o pierce_v themselves_o through_o with_o many_o sorrow_n behold_v the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v the_o sting_n that_o pierce_v they_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n and_o this_o sting_n it_o pierce_v through_o the_o heart_n and_o stabb_v the_o soul_n of_o every_o covetous_a man_n in_o the_o world_n that_o they_o can_v claim_v any_o part_n of_o that_o victory_n which_o god_n communicate_v to_o his_o child_n but_o they_o be_v foil_v base_a creature_n that_o be_v make_v for_o slaughter_n and_o destruction_n and_o so_o again_o for_o they_o that_o live_v in_o their_o pleasure_n in_o their_o voluptuous_a and_o filthy_a course_n that_o will_v grow_v old_a in_o adultery_n that_o will_v make_v no_o end_n of_o their_o filthiness_n and_o uncleanness_n but_o with_o greediness_n seek_v when_o one_o prey_n be_v enjoy_v how_o to_o obtain_v another_o these_o that_o make_v their_o vessel_n that_o shall_v be_v temple_n of_o god_n the_o brothell-house_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o be_v no_o soon_o tempt_v but_o they_o yield_v these_o come_a creature_n how_o or_o with_o what_o face_n with_o what_o confidence_n can_v they_o lay_v claim_n to_o the_o victory_n that_o we_o have_v in_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o bruit_n and_o be_v give_v over_o yield_v themselves_o they_o have_v take_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o follow_v satan_n direction_n and_o command_n as_o if_o christ_n have_v no_o power_n to_o be_v their_o chieftain_n but_o the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n must_v rule_v the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o all_o these_o malicious_a prowl_a spirit_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n that_o take_v delight_n to_o sting_v their_o brethren_n to_o do_v mischief_n without_o cause_n to_o sow_v the_o seed_n of_o dissension_n that_o will_v wrangle_v out_o their_o life_n to_o trouble_v other_o to_o bring_v upon_o they_o endless_a suit_n and_o question_n that_o shall_v never_o be_v decide_v to_o vex_v the_o world_n with_o beg_v or_o buy_v of_o new_a find_v offfice_n to_o make_v their_o hand_n full_a out_o of_o every_o thing_n sacred_a and_o profane_a to_o play_v the_o very_a roar_a lion_n in_o their_o den_n that_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v how_o he_o shall_v live_v or_o keep_v himself_o quiet_a with_o they_o that_o these_o creature_n i_o say_v shall_v come_v and_o claim_v any_o part_n in_o this_o
in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n he_o say_v the_o apostle_n do_v not_o fear_v to_o confirm_v the_o certainty_n of_o his_o salvation_n by_o swear_v for_o say_v he_o by_o the_o confidence_n that_o i_o have_v in_o christ_n jesus_n i_o die_v daily_o among_o the_o greek_n none_o doubt_v of_o it_o but_o those_o that_o be_v simple_a and_o unlearned_a therefore_o i_o say_v this_o be_v a_o oath_n and_o so_o the_o strong_a confirmation_n that_o can_v be_v 45.23_o 2_o the_o thing_n he_o swear_v by_o esay_n 45.23_o but_o how_o do_v saint_n paul_n swear_v by_o that_o which_o be_v not_o god_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o swear_v by_o any_o thing_n but_o the_o name_n of_o god_n as_o the_o lord_n say_v every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v to_o i_o and_o every_o tongue_n shall_v confess_v i_o and_o swear_v by_o my_o name_n 6.13_o heb._n 6.13_o it_o be_v true_a that_o when_o god_n swear_v have_v no_o great_a to_o swear_v by_o he_o swear_v by_o himself_o and_o when_o man_n swear_v he_o must_v always_o swear_v by_o a_o great_a for_o that_o be_v the_o end_n of_o a_o oath_n to_o protest_v a_o unknown_a truth_n by_o the_o presence_n and_o countenance_n of_o a_o great_a person_n than_o himself_o and_o one_o which_o can_v lie_v therefore_o it_o be_v unlawful_a for_o a_o christian_n to_o swear_v by_o any_o name_n but_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o that_o not_o often_o much_o less_o always_o or_o in_o frivolous_a cause_n for_o this_o our_o lord_n christ_n condemn_v when_o he_o say_v swear_v not_o at_o all_o 5.34_o math_n 5.34_o that_o be_v not_o often_o nor_o out_o of_o passion_n but_o as_o a_o oath_n be_v a_o special_a service_n of_o god_n so_o it_o be_v to_o be_v take_v upon_o special_a occasion_n but_o now_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o swear_v by_o no_o name_n but_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o rejoice_v in_o christ_n be_v not_o christ_n himself_o wherefore_o then_o do_v the_o apostle_n swear_v by_o his_o rejoice_v in_o christ_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o to_o swear_v by_o any_o immediate_a fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o any_o thing_n that_o flow_v immediate_o from_o god_n to_o we_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o swear_v by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n itself_o this_o be_v so_o individual_a and_o inseparable_a a_o thing_n the_o comfort_n namely_o and_o the_o joy_n of_o christ_n have_v bring_v into_o the_o world_n that_o it_o be_v as_o inseparable_a from_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o shadow_n from_o the_o body_n therefore_o as_o a_o man_n may_v swear_v by_o the_o shadow_n that_o there_o be_v a_o body_n and_o swear_v the_o one_o he_o intimate_v the_o other_o and_o conclude_v the_o other_o so_o the_o apostle_n here_o he_o swear_v by_o this_o fruit_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v joy_n and_o peace_n even_o the_o peace_n of_o god_n which_o pass_v all_o understanding_n which_o he_o find_v in_o his_o heart_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o christ_n jesus_n who_o make_v our_o joy_n to_o be_v full_a who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o joy_n swear_v by_o this_o he_o swear_v by_o the_o chief_a jewel_n of_o salvation_n which_o be_v the_o penny_n that_o christ_n have_v give_v he_o as_o a_o earnest_n as_o a_o pawn_n and_o gage_n of_o his_o love_n out_o of_o this_o that_o he_o say_v our_o rejoice_v observe_v i_o beseech_v you_o the_o wondrous_a temper_n of_o a_o christian_a how_o he_o be_v compose_v of_o strange_a extreme_a contrary_n of_o death_n and_o life_n of_o sorrow_n and_o joy_n of_o peace_n and_o war_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n that_o can_v be_v imagine_v so_o contrary_a as_o be_v the_o several_a part_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n constitution_n upon_o this_o ground_n the_o holy_a apostle_n go_v 2_o cor_fw-la 4._o etc._n 2_o cor._n 4.8_o etc._n etc._n where_o he_o make_v the_o definition_n of_o a_o christian_a after_o the_o same_o manner_n say_v he_o we_o be_v indeed_o oppress_v and_o persecute_v but_o yet_o not_o crush_v altogether_o we_o be_v as_o man_n dead_a and_o yet_o behold_v we_o live_v poor_a and_o yet_o make_v many_o rich_a as_o have_v nothing_o and_o yet_o we_o possess_v all_o thing_n this_o be_v that_o marvellous_a mixture_n that_o god_n have_v appoint_v his_o child_n to_o come_v to_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v conformable_a to_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o be_v in_o death_n and_o yet_o that_o they_o shall_v revive_v again_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o so_o no_o man_n be_v less_o in_o death_n be_v always_o in_o life_n and_o have_v the_o certain_a pledge_n and_o pawn_v of_o life_n eternal_a as_o for_o the_o man_n of_o this_o world_n the_o son_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n when_o they_o think_v themselves_o most_o lively_a then_o be_v they_o most_o deep_o in_o death_n every_o thing_n work_v against_o they_o the_o storm_n of_o god_n wrath_n attend_v they_o and_o work_v upon_o their_o conscience_n at_o some_o time_n or_o other_o such_o fearful_a death_n as_o out_o of_o which_o they_o can_v make_v no_o evasion_n or_o escape_n but_o with_o the_o child_n of_o god_n it_o be_v contrary_a when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o death_n they_o be_v in_o the_o height_n of_o life_n 4.16_o 2_o cor._n 4.16_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v although_o our_o outward_a man_n die_v daily_o and_o be_v corrupt_v yet_o the_o inward_a man_n be_v renew_v and_o revive_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n so_o in_o all_o the_o passage_n of_o their_o life_n where_o death_n seem_v to_o have_v the_o great_a sway_n and_o predominancie_n even_o there_o be_v life_n abundant_o over_o death_n and_o the_o root_n of_o life_n shall_v at_o length_n eat_v out_o the_o fruit_n of_o death_n and_o although_o death_n make_v a_o flourish_n for_o a_o time_n upon_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n yet_o because_o there_o be_v a_o root_n of_o life_n it_o shall_v still_o grow_v and_o bud_v and_o bring_v forth_o at_o length_n that_o death_n may_v be_v swallow_v up_o into_o victory_n 15.54_o 1_o cor._n 15.54_o in_o all_o thing_n the_o child_n of_o god_n have_v full_a contentment_n in_o this_o life_n although_o they_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o death_n this_o be_v the_o great_a miracle_n that_o god_n do_v in_o the_o world_n every_o holy_a man_n be_v a_o wonder_n every_o good_a man_n be_v a_o miracle_n like_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n 14.22_o exod._n 14.22_o that_o walk_v through_o the_o deep_a where_o there_o be_v never_o way_n know_v before_o like_o the_o three_o child_n in_o the_o furnace_n 3.25_o dan._n 3.25_o that_o walk_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o fire_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v in_o a_o pleasant_a meadow_n like_o the_o israelite_n and_o all_o their_o cattle_n that_o pass_v over_o jordan_n 16.25_o act_n 16.25_o like_o paul_n and_o sylas_n sing_v at_o midnight_n in_o chain_n and_o fetter_n in_o prison_n a_o miraculous_a spectacle_n to_o god_n and_o man_n which_o draw_v the_o eye_n of_o ang●●s_n to_o the_o contemplation_n of_o it_o for_o in_o sickness_n a_o christian_n be_v full_a of_o the_o save_a health_n of_o god_n in_o persecution_n he_o be_v full_a of_o quiet_a and_o contentment_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o prison_n he_o be_v full_a of_o psalm_n and_o spiritual_a song_n as_o be_v paul_n and_o sylas_n when_o he_o be_v bind_v in_o shackle_n he_o be_v free_a and_o expedite_v and_o loose_v as_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o another_o place_n though_o i_o be_v bind_v 2.9_o 2_o tim._n 2.9_o yet_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o bind_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o bind_v in_o all_o thing_n he_o be_v a_o breathe_a miracle_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o sound_v unto_o we_o as_o so_o many_o silver_n trumpet_n the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n that_o make_v such_o a_o correspondence_n and_o proportion_n between_o life_n and_o death_n that_o make_v death_n and_o life_n dwell_v together_o in_o one_o body_n and_o yet_o he_o will_v evacuate_v death_n by_o the_o power_n of_o life_n that_o life_n may_v surmount_v and_o death_n may_v be_v put_v under_o that_o at_o the_o last_o death_n may_v be_v debase_v and_o life_n may_v be_v advance_v and_o in_o that_o he_o say_v our_o rejoice_v or_o your_o rejoice_v for_o it_o be_v not_o material_a whether_o way_n it_o be_v read_v for_o it_o be_v a_o common_a joy_n if_o i_o read_v it_o you_o i_o have_v it_o if_o i_o you_o have_v it_o for_o it_o be_v a_o common_a joy_n in_o our_o common_a saviour_n this_o be_v that_o which_o all_o of_o we_o confess_v when_o we_o make_v our_o prayer_n to_o god_n we_o call_v he_o our_o father_n and_o we_o call_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n our_o saviour_n and_o so_o we_o may_v call_v the_o spirit_n our_o comforter_n because_o this_o common_a vein_n of_o joy_n it_o flow_v and_o run_v
speak_v of_o here_o say_v let_v we_o eat_v and_o drink_v for_o to_o morrow_n we_o shall_v die_v there_o be_v no_o wise_a man_n will_v ever_o give_v himself_o to_o this_o most_o bestial_a fashion_n be_v it_o but_o for_o the_o ill_a consequent_n of_o it_o for_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n there_o be_v nothing_o make_v a_o man_n less_o like_o a_o man_n then_o to_o be_v a_o great_a drinker_n especial_o to_o be_v a_o great_a eater_n such_o be_v the_o very_a monster_n of_o mankind_n nature_n be_v content_a with_o little_a and_o those_o that_o exceed_v that_o measure_n be_v hate_v and_o ridiculous_a to_o all_o man_n to_o see_v what_o mischief_n it_o bring_v to_o the_o body_n to_o this_o little_a frame_n of_o the_o world_n to_o see_v what_o intolerable_a damage_n accrewe_v by_o it_o to_o the_o understanding_n of_o man_n what_o gross_a heaviness_n it_o bring_v upon_o the_o body_n how_o it_o take_v away_o all_o nimbleness_n and_o agility_n how_o it_o take_v away_o all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n how_o it_o confound_v the_o memory_n how_o it_o drown_v every_o part_n of_o reasonable_a discourse_n how_o it_o make_v a_o man_n a_o swad_n and_o deform_v that_o proportion_n and_o comely_a figure_n that_o god_n have_v impose_v upon_o he_o every_o man_n know_v these_o thing_n by_o common_a and_o woeful_a experience_n and_o yet_o these_o wretch_n cry_v out_o let_v we_o eat_v and_o drink_v as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v let_v we_o become_v fool_n let_v we_o make_v ourselves_o mad_a let_v we_o drown_v our_o understanding_n let_v we_o disfigure_v ourselves_o that_o man_n may_v not_o know_v we_o to_o be_v man_n for_o nothing_o make_v a_o man_n less_o discern_v to_o be_v that_o which_o once_o he_o be_v then_o excessive_a eat_v and_o drink_v let_v we_o so_o eat_v and_o drink_v therefore_o that_o we_o may_v eat_v and_o drink_v in_o heaven_n let_v we_o not_o so_o set_v ourselves_o upon_o our_o belly_n as_o to_o become_v son_n of_o belial_n let_v we_o take_v our_o bread_n here_o as_o a_o earnest_n of_o that_o bread_n we_o shall_v have_v in_o heaven_n let_v we_o sit_v at_o our_o table_n so_o here_o as_o a_o representation_n of_o the_o 12._o table_n on_o which_o the_o 12_o apostle_n shall_v judge_v the_o 12_o tribe_n of_o israel_n 22.30_o luke_n 22.30_o christ_n say_v they_o shall_v sit_v upon_o 12_o table_n and_o eat_v and_o drink_v with_o he_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n it_o shall_v teach_v we_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v these_o temporal_a thing_n with_o conscience_n with_o remembrance_n with_o prefiguration_n and_o signification_n of_o those_o eternal_a meat_n &_o drink_n which_o we_o shall_v have_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n by_o the_o mercy_n god_n for_o although_o it_o be_v true_a we_o shall_v not_o eat_v and_o drink_v there_o yet_o because_o this_o life_n consist_v in_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v set_v we_o down_o the_o model_n of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v with_o such_o joy_n and_o delight_n as_o may_v be_v compare_v nay_o which_o far_o transcend_v eat_v and_o drink_v but_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n better_o be_v express_v to_o we_o than_o by_o these_o of_o eat_v and_o drink_v for_o to_o eat_v and_o to_o drink_v and_o to_o reign_v and_o to_o rejoice_v and_o to_o dance_v and_o sing_v there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o heaven_n but_o we_o can_v understand_v the_o joy_n in_o heaven_n while_o we_o be_v here_o upon_o earth_n except_o it_o be_v set_v forth_o to_o we_o by_o these_o foil_n therefore_o the_o lord_n condescend_v to_o our_o capacity_n and_o tell_v we_o of_o eat_v and_o drink_v in_o heaven_n let_v we_o therefore_o eat_v so_o here_o as_o that_o we_o may_v maintain_v a_o hope_n of_o heaven_n let_v not_o our_o table_n be_v make_v a_o snare_n here_o 11.9_o rom._n 11.9_o that_o which_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o our_o sustentation_n let_v it_o not_o turn_v to_o our_o confusion_n god_n have_v not_o appoint_v meat_n and_o drink_v to_o overthrow_v we_o but_o to_o refresh_v we_o to_o make_v we_o fit_a for_o his_o service_n and_o more_o able_a to_o the_o work_n of_o our_o call_n let_v we_o therefore_o disclaim_v and_o abhor_v this_o brutish_a acclamation_n which_o these_o wicked_a wretch_n make_v that_o have_v no_o portion_n but_o their_o belly_n that_o be_v altogether_o for_o the_o gut_n and_o let_v we_o repute_v they_o among_o the_o base_a of_o beast_n but_o let_v we_o so_o eat_v as_o those_o that_o shall_v receive_v eternal_a food_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n so_o much_o for_o the_o first_o point_n the_o poison_n propound_v now_o we_o be_v to_o see_v the_o cause_n that_o these_o man_n allege_v for_o themselves_o die_v 2_o point_v reason_n alledg●d_n to_o morrow_n we_o shall_v die_v why_o they_o shall_v eat_v and_o drink_v for_o the_o wretched_a understanding_n of_o man_n be_v so_o deprave_a and_o corrupt_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o they_o will_v drink_v poison_n upon_o reason_n these_o epicure_n allege_v reason_n for_o their_o brutish_a course_n and_o their_o reason_n be_v because_o to_o morrow_n we_o shall_v die_v this_o be_v a_o close_a mockery_n for_o when_o isay_n tell_v they_o in_o his_o time_n they_o shall_v die_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n for_o their_o wickedness_n they_o mock_v god_n in_o the_o prophet_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v he_o tell_v we_o we_o shall_v die_v he_o still_o threaten_v judgement_n and_o we_o know_v not_o how_o soon_o we_o may_v be_v take_v out_o of_o this_o world_n therefore_o as_o long_o as_o we_o live_v let_v we_o have_v a_o time_n of_o it_o and_o while_o we_o live_v let_v we_o live_v since_o our_o time_n be_v short_a let_v we_o take_v the_o benefit_n of_o that_o time_n we_o have_v and_o so_o make_v it_o our_o happiness_n see_v the_o wondrous_a stroke_n of_o god_n hand_n in_o blind_a the_o understanding_n of_o man_n we_o be_v subject_a god_n know_v to_o the_o whole_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o sin_n work_v shame_n and_o confusion_n every_o where_n but_o there_o be_v no_o plague_n like_o this_o when_o a_o man_n brain_n be_v smite_v when_o his_o understanding_n be_v disturb_v when_o he_o draw_v false_a and_o base_a conclusion_n out_o of_o idle_a and_o foolish_a premise_n then_o come_v the_o wrack_n and_o ruin_n of_o the_o poor_a creature_n there_o be_v nothing_o so_o wretched_a and_o miserable_a in_o the_o world_n as_o a_o mad_a man_n and_o in_o the_o body_n of_o christianity_n there_o be_v none_o so_o mad_a as_o those_o man_n that_o argue_v after_o a_o contrary_a manner_n which_o upon_o strange_a premise_n bring_v in_o unnatural_a conclusion_n for_o i_o beseech_v you_o consider_v do_v it_o follow_v because_o to_o morrow_n we_o shall_v die_v that_o therefore_o we_o shall_v feast_v &_o jovial_a it_o out_o to_o day_n nay_o clean_a contrary_n it_o follow_v rather_o thou_o shall_v throw_v thyself_o down_o in_o spirit_n and_o humble_a thy_o soul_n with_o fast_v and_o prayer_n and_o in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o humiliation_n to_o god_n to_o crave_v pardon_n for_o thy_o sin_n and_o so_o to_o prepare_v thou_o a_o way_n to_o everlasting_a glory_n how_o can_v thy_o meat_n be_v digest_v when_o thou_o must_v die_v to_o morrow_n what_o man_n be_v so_o stout_a heart_a that_o if_o he_o know_v he_o shall_v die_v to_o morrow_n will_v feast_v to_o day_n can_v such_o a_o man_n swallow_v down_o his_o morsel_n with_o pleasure_n can_v he_o put_v over_o his_o drink_n with_o delight_n can_v he_o have_v any_o taste_n or_o relish_v in_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v destinate_a a_o die_a man_n it_o be_v a_o wretched_a and_o devilish_a conclusion_n and_o yet_o god_n give_v over_o the_o wicked_a &_o wretched_a world_n to_o draw_v poysonful_a sense_n and_o wicked_a conclusion_n out_o of_o clean_a contrary_a premyse_n what_o be_v that_o thou_o say_v say_v saint_n austin_n to_o morrow_n we_o shall_v die_v let_v we_o eat_v and_o drink_v say_v he_o thou_o have_v terrify_v i_o indeed_o but_o thou_o have_v not_o deceive_v i_o thou_o have_v terrify_v i_o because_o thou_o say_v to_o morrow_n i_o shall_v die_v and_o perhaps_o so_o i_o may_v the_o frailty_n of_o my_o nature_n be_v such_o that_o i_o may_v die_v to_o night_n before_o to_o morrow_n yet_o thou_o have_v not_o deceive_v i_o for_o if_o i_o shall_v die_v to_o morrow_n as_o thou_o say_v i_o will_v fast_o to_o day_n certain_o augustine_n augustine_n so_o saint_n austin_n conclude_v and_o so_o will_v all_o reason_n conclude_v even_o a_o natural_a man_n for_o as_o plutarch_n plutarch_n plutarch_n say_v there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o if_o the_o emperor_n shall_v send_v he_o word_n that_o he_o shall_v prepare_v himself_o and_o that_o after_o three_o day_n he_o shall_v die_v there_o be_v no_o man_n will_v be_v so_o brutish_a as_o
for_o the_o ear_n those_o that_o be_v wrestler_n and_o fight_v with_o the_o club_n they_o be_v arm_v with_o these_o amphitede_n which_o be_v make_v of_o some_o hard_a matter_n that_o so_o they_o may_v keep_v the_o blow_n from_o their_o ear_n that_o upon_o the_o sudden_a they_o may_v not_o be_v astound_v and_o dazzle_a and_o strike_v down_o but_o may_v stand_v the_o long_o in_o the_o fight_n therefore_o they_o have_v these_o amphitede_n about_o their_o ear_n when_o they_o fight_v at_o the_o club_n and_o say_v plutarch_n these_o aught_o every_o young_a man_n to_o take_v as_o a_o special_a munition_n against_o evil_a speech_n for_o there_o be_v no_o blow_n either_o with_o staff_n or_o club_n that_o afflict_v the_o body_n or_o so_o stound_n the_o brain_n of_o a_o man_n as_o evil_a and_o wicked_a speech_n infect_v the_o soul_n therefore_o the_o best_a way_n be_v to_o deem_v such_o speech_n base_a and_o impious_a to_o turn_v the_o ear_n from_o they_o and_o to_o give_v no_o audience_n to_o they_o for_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o they_o but_o mischief_n the_o mouth_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v nothing_o but_o as_o the_o raw_a grave_n as_o the_o prophet_n say_v 5.9_o psal_n 5.9_o their_o throat_n be_v a_o open_a sepulchre_n that_o as_o the_o grave_n where_o a_o corpse_n have_v be_v late_o bury_v be_v new_o rave_v in_o there_o will_v a_o filthy_a vapour_n &_o stench_n exhale_v and_o come_v forth_o to_o the_o danger_n of_o all_o the_o stander_n by_o so_o the_o throat_n of_o evil_a man_n their_o wicked_a speech_n be_v as_o a_o raw_a grave_n &_o sepulchre_n which_o when_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v open_v let_v all_o the_o company_n run_v away_o as_o fast_o as_o they_o can_v for_o there_o be_v a_o deadly_a stench_n that_o will_v infect_v they_o their_o throat_n be_v a_o open_a sepulchre_n they_o breathe_v out_o the_o blast_n of_o death_n of_o filthiness_n and_o corruption_n and_o now_o he_o proceed_v further_a and_o tell_v they_o that_o if_o they_o enter_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o those_o man_n speak_v they_o be_v mere_a idle_a dream_n of_o a_o drunken_a man_n their_o speech_n and_o communication_n be_v the_o most_o senseless_a of_o all_o other_o therefore_o he_o say_v awake_v you_o drunkard_n to_o justice_n or_o righteousness_n show_v that_o all_o those_o word_n that_o be_v any_o way_n against_o god_n and_o his_o power_n and_o glory_n in_o the_o resurrection_n what_o discourse_n soever_o it_o be_v that_o call_v that_o in_o question_n it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o as_o saint_n basil_n basil_n basil_n call_v it_o the_o mere_a dream_n of_o a_o drunken_a man_n it_o be_v a_o idle_a thing_n for_o any_o man_n to_o hearken_v to_o a_o drunkard_n speech_n especial_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v between_o sleep_v and_o wake_v so_o it_o be_v much_o more_o idle_a to_o hearken_v to_o these_o evil_a speech_n and_o discourse_n of_o these_o blasphemous_a mouth_n now_o because_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n have_v be_v infect_v with_o this_o cup_n and_o have_v take_v so_o much_o of_o it_o that_o many_o of_o they_o be_v drink_v with_o it_o therefore_o i_o will_v you_o say_v the_o apostle_n to_o wake_v now_o while_o god_n have_v give_v you_o time_n and_o opportunity_n while_o by_o my_o ministry_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o shall_v succeed_v i_o he_o give_v you_o summons_n and_o call_v you_o to_o wake_v out_o of_o this_o drunken_a humour_n from_o these_o wicked_a speech_n that_o tend_v to_o sensuality_n and_o carnalitie_n let_v we_o eat_v and_o drink_v for_o to_o morrow_n we_o shall_v die_v and_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o we_o when_o we_o be_v dead_a these_o evil_a speech_n be_v the_o dregs_n of_o hell_n and_o the_o lees_n of_o this_o deadly_a wine_n you_o have_v take_v in_o abundance_n to_o yourselves_o therefore_o as_o soon_o as_o you_o can_v awake_v and_o so_o wake_v as_o you_o may_v stand_v up_o to_o righteousness_n and_o follow_v that_o and_o walk_v therein_o for_o ever_o hereafter_o for_o there_o be_v difference_n in_o they_o that_o be_v wake_v out_o of_o sleep_n some_o be_v awake_v with_o less_o noise_n the_o creak_n of_o a_o door_n the_o least_o noise_n in_o a_o chamber_n will_v wake_v some_o such_o be_v those_o that_o be_v of_o tender_a heart_n in_o god_n church_n the_o least_o advertisement_n and_o admonition_n will_v bring_v they_o home_o other_o be_v profound_o and_o deadly_a asleep_a such_o as_o be_v speak_v of_o here_o drunken_a man_n that_o be_v more_o violent_o asleep_a then_o other_o they_o can_v be_v draw_v from_o it_o without_o extremity_n they_o can_v be_v wake_v without_o call_v without_o jog_v or_o pinch_v and_o whatsoever_o mean_n can_v be_v use_v to_o recover_v they_o yea_o when_o they_o be_v awake_v except_o they_o be_v take_v when_o their_o sleep_n be_v mellow_a they_o grow_v into_o desperate_a fury_n and_o madness_n and_o some_o when_o they_o be_v awake_v they_o go_v not_o to_o their_o work_n they_o set_v not_o to_o action_n but_o like_o the_o foolish_a sluggard_n in_o the_o proverbes_n they_o cry_v 6.10_o prov._n 6.10_o a_o little_a more_o sleep_n a_o little_a more_o fold_v of_o the_o hand_n a_o little_a more_o turn_v and_o toss_v as_o saint_n austin_n say_v aug._n aug._n a_o little_a more_o sleep_n a_o little_a more_o slumber_n and_o i_o will_v rise_v now_o and_o now_o but_o now_o and_o now_o have_v no_o measure_n nor_o bound_n in_o they_o now_o because_o there_o be_v such_o difference_n in_o man_n wake_n the_o apostle_n set_v down_o the_o manner_n how_o they_o shall_v wake_v awake_v sufficient_o not_o so_o as_o to_o return_v to_o sleep_v again_o the_o sleep_n natural_a must_v be_v iterate_v and_o repeat_v man_n can_v always_o wake_v but_o they_o must_v have_v some_o time_n to_o revive_v and_o refresh_v their_o spirit_n with_o the_o vicissitude_n &_o change_n of_o sleep_n but_o the_o spiritual_a wake_n be_v of_o another_o nature_n it_o must_v be_v undertake_v upon_o such_o condition_n and_o perform_v so_o as_o that_o we_o never_o return_v by_o our_o good_a will_n unto_o sleep_n or_o if_o our_o natural_a infirmity_n carry_v we_o so_o far_o yet_o never_o to_o snort_v and_o slumber_n in_o sin_n any_o more_o but_o to_o wake_v to_o righteousness_n and_o to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v good_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o then_o because_o it_o may_v be_v somewhat_o doubtful_a what_o this_o be_v that_o he_o say_v awake_v just_o to_o righteousness_n he_o expound_v himself_o in_o the_o next_o word_n sin_n not_o 4.4_o psal_n 4.4_o a_o phrase_n common_a among_o the_o hebrew_n psal_n 4._o commune_fw-la with_o your_o own_o heart_n and_o be_v still_o and_o sin_v not_o so_o here_o he_o tell_v what_o he_o mean_v when_o he_o say_v awake_v just_o that_o be_v give_v not_o yourselves_o to_o sin_n and_o corruption_n for_o that_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o all_o these_o mischief_n sin_n be_v like_o cyrces_n cup_n that_o inveigle_v and_o drown_v man_n in_o slumber_n that_o they_o never_o rise_v again_o without_o the_o wondrous_a mercy_n of_o god_n therefore_o take_v heed_n you_o fall_v not_o into_o it_o because_o that_o bring_v all_o other_o evil_n it_o be_v that_o which_o bring_v the_o corruption_n of_o good_a word_n and_o good_a manner_n and_o you_o fall_v into_o they_o because_o you_o have_v no_o care_n of_o your_o conversation_n that_o be_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o text._n then_o in_o the_o second_o he_o begin_v to_o deal_v more_o near_o with_o they_o and_o tell_v they_o of_o their_o proper_a fault_n that_o they_o be_v ignorant_a in_o thing_n concern_v god_n that_o they_o know_v not_o god_n which_o be_v the_o main_a object_n of_o all_o our_o knowledge_n for_o those_o that_o know_v not_o god_n or_o know_v he_o but_o by_o half_n that_o call_v in_o question_n the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o raise_n of_o our_o body_n they_o be_v mere_o ignorant_a of_o god_n he_o that_o doubt_v of_o god_n power_n concern_v the_o raise_n of_o the_o dead_a he_o be_v as_o good_a know_v nothing_o of_o god_n for_o he_o limit_n and_o straighten_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o make_v he_o inferior_a to_o himself_o and_o inferior_a to_o his_o word_n for_o his_o power_n be_v great_a than_o his_o will_n and_o his_o will_n be_v reveal_v in_o his_o word_n and_o his_o word_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o will_v do_v it_o therefore_o certain_o he_o can_v do_v it_o because_o he_o can_v do_v more_o than_o he_o will_v do_v therefore_o he_o that_o call_v in_o question_n these_o thing_n he_o be_v as_o good_a to_o have_v no_o sense_n or_o taste_v of_o god_n at_o all_o he_o know_v not_o god_n he_o deny_v the_o prime_a and_o chief_a thing_n that_o be_v in_o god_n and_o therefore_o he_o know_v he_o not_o and_o so_o it_o be_v with_o some_o of_o
gross_a heresy_n for_o which_o he_o be_v say_v to_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n notwithstanding_o he_o deny_v it_o not_o but_o he_o have_v a_o conceit_n that_o the_o body_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n shall_v rise_v and_o then_o after_o that_o they_o shall_v die_v again_o and_o another_o resurrection_n shall_v come_v after_o that_o and_o another_o after_o that_o and_o in_o every_o resurrection_n they_o shall_v be_v less_o and_o less_o until_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o nothing_o thus_o in_o effect_n he_o deny_v it_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v make_v our_o body_n nothing_o lesser_a but_o great_a and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o stature_n and_o proportion_n of_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v raise_v to_o glory_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v shall_v be_v infinite_o more_o great_a then_o that_o which_o they_o have_v now_o 13.33_o numb_a 13.33_o they_o shall_v be_v like_a giant_n in_o respect_n of_o grassehopper_n according_a to_o their_o speech_n that_o go_v to_o spy_v out_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n we_o see_v now_o in_o this_o small_a stature_n that_o we_o have_v in_o this_o world_n what_o a_o goodly_a sight_n it_o be_v to_o see_v a_o tall_a proper_a man_n they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o giant_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o world_n they_o be_v the_o chief_a copy_n of_o god_n great_a and_o wondrous_a power_n and_o there_o be_v that_o state_n and_o majesty_n in_o their_o body_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o person_n of_o little_a man_n as_o also_o we_o see_v that_o those_o country_n which_o natural_o bring_v forth_o such_o tall_a and_o mighty_a man_n they_o have_v great_a privilege_n and_o precedent_n of_o honour_n give_v unto_o they_o that_o god_n have_v do_v by_o they_o mighty_a and_o marvellous_a work_n in_o the_o world_n therefore_o the_o glory_n of_o manhood_n consist_v now_o in_o a_o strait_a and_o tall_a procerity_n in_o a_o goodly_a proportion_n of_o limb_n and_o bigness_n of_o body_n in_o which_o regard_n saul_n be_v commend_v that_o he_o be_v high_a than_o all_o the_o people_n by_o the_o head_n and_o shoulder_n and_o so_o in_o homer_n 9.1_o 1._o sam._n 9.1_o homer_n homer_n great_a man_n have_v still_o this_o commendation_n they_o be_v man_n that_o be_v eminent_a above_o their_o fellow_n that_o be_v of_o such_o a_o proportion_n i_o say_v then_o if_o it_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o humanity_n if_o it_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o manhood_n not_o to_o be_v dwarfish_a and_o small_a but_o to_o be_v of_o a_o goodly_a stature_n in_o this_o world_n we_o must_v imagine_v that_o god_n will_v bring_v we_o to_o all_o perfection_n in_o the_o other_o world_n he_o will_v bring_v all_o his_o saint_n to_o a_o goodly_a bigness_n to_o a_o comely_a tallnesse_n and_o proportion_n as_o a_o little_a corn_n of_o wheat_n bring_v a_o goodly_a tall_a and_o beautiful_a ear_n of_o corn_n out_o of_o a_o small_a grain_n that_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o ground_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o diminution_n to_o be_v imagine_v as_o if_o the_o body_n shall_v grow_v less_o and_o less_o till_o it_o come_v to_o nothing_o but_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a ampliation_n the_o lord_n extend_v and_o drive_v out_o the_o body_n draw_v it_o to_o the_o full_a lineament_n and_o to_o the_o perfect_a length_n so_o the_o apostle_n similitude_n infer_v against_o origen_n and_o those_o that_o maintain_v his_o opinion_n now_o these_o thing_n be_v very_o plain_a in_o the_o open_a experience_n of_o nature_n but_o because_o we_o see_v not_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o they_o which_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v therefore_o they_o be_v hold_v to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n incredible_a to_o a_o man_n that_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o the_o field_n that_o be_v not_o see_v and_o experiment_v in_o this_o kind_n he_o will_v think_v it_o impossible_a that_o out_o of_o such_o a_o poor_a principle_n as_o a_o grain_n of_o corn_n there_o shall_v come_v such_o a_o deal_n of_o grace_n and_o beauty_n as_o that_o verdure_n of_o colour_n and_o such_o a_o flower_n and_o leaf_n of_o grass_n as_o the_o flag_n of_o it_o that_o there_o shall_v come_v so_o much_o straw_n to_o support_v it_o and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o structure_n in_o the_o knop_n of_o it_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o abundance_n in_o the_o treasure_n of_o it_o we_o shall_v think_v these_o thing_n mere_o impossible_a but_o that_o common_a use_n and_o experience_n make_v we_o cease_v to_o wonder_v and_o if_o we_o can_v see_v that_o which_o be_v spiritual_a as_o we_o do_v this_o that_o be_v outward_a we_o shall_v as_o well_o be_v induce_v to_o subscribe_v and_o consent_n to_o it_o but_o in_o the_o outward_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n we_o see_v the_o sow_v and_o the_o mow_v we_o see_v the_o sow_v and_o the_o reap_v the_o seed_n time_n and_o the_o harvest_n therefore_o by_o much_o experience_n we_o be_v teach_v to_o believe_v it_o without_o doubt_v but_o for_o that_o which_o be_v spiritual_a for_o the_o resurrection_n we_o see_v only_o the_o time_n of_o sow_v but_o we_o can_v live_v to_o see_v the_o time_n of_o mow_v in_o this_o world_n for_o the_o body_n be_v sow_v and_o the_o seed_n lie_v rot_v in_o the_o ground_n some_o five_o thousand_o year_n some_o less_o but_o all_o a_o long_a time_n yet_o it_o please_v god_n to_o bring_v as_o it_o be_v the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n upon_o they_o to_o raise_v they_o from_o their_o grave_n unto_o the_o harvest_n then_o that_o truth_n which_o we_o now_o believe_v shall_v appear_v as_o plain_o as_o that_o which_o we_o apprehend_v by_o sense_n the_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n will_v teach_v we_o here_o i_o will_v but_o summary_o touch_v at_o because_o all_o this_o speech_n except_o it_o be_v better_o utter_v be_v mere_o unprofitable_a cold_n unprofitable_a in_o regard_n of_o his_o extreme_a cold_n and_o unpleasant_a also_o i_o will_v therefore_o cut_v off_o all_o superfluity_n and_o only_o touch_v that_o which_o be_v mere_o necessary_a and_o elementary_o point_v at_o first_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o what_o be_v man_n part_n and_o then_o what_o be_v god_n part_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o sow_v and_o so_o we_o must_v apply_v it_o to_o the_o resurrection_n for_o that_o be_v the_o apostle_n purpose_n as_o be_v a_o parabolicall_a doctrine_n from_o a_o similitude_n and_o therefore_o he_o rest_v not_o in_o the_o outward_a letter_n but_o refer_v and_o reduce_v we_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o intent_n of_o it_o which_o be_v to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o resurrection_n now_o the_o part_n that_o man_n do_v he_o speak_v of_o it_o part._n division_n into_o 1._o man_n part._n 2._o god_n part._n first_o negative_o what_o he_o do_v not_o sow_v and_o then_o affirmative_o what_o be_v sow_v negative_o what_o he_o do_v not_o sow_v he_o sow_v not_o that_o that_o shall_v be_v and_o then_o he_o show_v affirmative_o what_o he_o do_v sow_v a_o bare_a grain_n a_o bare_a corn_n devoid_a of_o such_o ornament_n as_o god_n afterward_o give_v unto_o it_o then_o in_o the_o next_o part_n what_o god_n do_v he_o give_v it_o a_o body_n to_o every_o seed_n the_o same_o body_n the_o same_o body_n in_o essence_n and_o substance_n but_o so_o change_v and_o better_v and_o alter_v that_o a_o man_n will_v think_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o bring_v out_o of_o such_o a_o foundation_n such_o a_o kind_n of_o conclusion_n and_o because_o the_o lord_n be_v wondrous_a in_o all_o his_o work_n therefore_o he_o give_v to_o every_o seed_n it_o be_v own_o peculiar_a body_n although_o there_o be_v many_o change_n and_o difference_n yet_o it_o come_v to_o it_o self_n again_o to_o that_o it_o be_v before_o and_o it_o run_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o kind_n of_o a_o circle_n he_o give_v it_o its_o own_o body_n and_o the_o way_n and_o manner_n and_o reason_n of_o all_o this_o be_v as_o he_o please_v for_o he_o do_v whatsoever_o it_o please_v he_o in_o all_o the_o work_n of_o nature_n and_o in_o all_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n affirmative_o 1._o part._n man_n part_n handle_v first_o negative_o 2._o affirmative_o concern_v the_o first_o point_n it_o be_v say_v the_o sour_a sow_v not_o that_o body_n that_o shall_v be_v which_o we_o know_v to_o be_v true_a for_o he_o sow_v neither_o a_o ear_n nor_o he_o sow_v not_o a_o flag_n neither_o sow_v he_o a_o hawne_n nor_o a_o straw_n nor_o a_o knot_n in_o the_o straw_n he_o sow_v none_o of_o these_o be_v 1_o negative_o what_o man_n sow_v not_o not_o that_o body_n that_o shall_v be_v yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o sow_v that_o which_o have_v all_o these_o in_o it_o potential_o in_o the_o power_n of_o it_o by_o the_o blessing_n
it_o be_v impossible_a for_o the_o body_n shall_v never_o grow_v worse_o and_o worse_o by_o degeneration_n but_o it_o shall_v be_v bring_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o that_o high_a perfection_n that_o it_o shall_v still_o be_v infinite_o better_a and_o yet_o still_o it_o self_n it_o shall_v still_o be_v the_o self_n same_o in_o essence_n though_o not_o in_o quality_n it_o shall_v be_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n and_o nature_n but_o not_o the_o same_o in_o eminency_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n it_o shall_v be_v the_o same_o in_o be_v but_o not_o the_o same_o in_o seem_v or_o in_o circumstance_n and_o so_o saint_n chrysostome_n say_v it_o be_v the_o same_o and_o not_o the_o same_o it_o be_v the_o same_o as_o touch_v the_o fundamental_a essence_n of_o it_o and_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o concern_v the_o augmentation_n and_o the_o rare_a quality_n that_o god_n shall_v impose_v upon_o it_o and_o invest_v it_o withal_o and_o so_o i_o say_v it_o be_v that_o comfortable_a doctrine_n to_o this_o flesh_n of_o we_o that_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v any_o other_o flesh_n glorify_v for_o it_o but_o that_o this_o flesh_n that_o have_v suffer_v martyrdom_n this_o flesh_n that_o have_v suffer_v hunger_n and_o thirst_n sickness_n and_o persecution_n in_o the_o world_n this_o flesh_n that_o have_v suffer_v for_o christ_n this_o flesh_n and_o no_o other_o but_o this_o shall_v receive_v the_o crown_n of_o glory_n according_a to_o the_o manifold_a evil_n it_o have_v endure_v otherwise_o there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a consolation_n in_o this_o life_n see_v the_o spirit_n also_o shall_v have_v large_a endowment_n the_o soul_n of_o man_n the_o wit_n shall_v be_v great_a and_o the_o memory_n great_a and_o all_o the_o part_n and_o faculty_n shall_v be_v more_o excellent_a in_o the_o soul_n now_o these_o be_v not_o visible_a part_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o that_o which_o shall_v rise_v for_o it_o be_v that_o which_o be_v visible_a which_o belong_v to_o the_o resurrection_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o soul_n can_v be_v manifest_a it_o be_v still_o hide_a and_o inherent_a in_o the_o inner-man_n but_o this_o glory_n that_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o resurrection_n it_o shall_v be_v manifest_a and_o there_o be_v no_o manifestation_n make_v but_o to_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o outward_a sense_n therefore_o here_o come_v the_o comfort_n to_o every_o poor_a distress_a body_n that_o the_o same_o that_o suffer_v and_o be_v miserable_a afflict_a and_o torment_v in_o this_o world_n the_o very_a same_o body_n shall_v receive_v abundance_n of_o joy_n and_o comfort_n and_o glory_n and_o beauty_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o poor_a creple_n that_o go_v double_a that_o move_v every_o man_n heart_n to_o pity_n to_o see_v he_o in_o the_o street_n he_o shall_v rise_v with_o a_o glorious_a and_o goodly_a body_n be_v incorporate_v into_o christ_n by_o faith_n he_o shall_v receive_v a_o body_n full_a of_o ample_a compliment_n and_o bless_a perfection_n to_o every_o seed_n his_o own_o body_n if_o it_o be_v the_o same_o body_n how_o then_o be_v it_o a_o new_a body_n ob._n ob._n and_o how_o then_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v it_o call_v a_o glorious_a body_n which_o make_v it_o different_a this_o i_o tell_v you_o shall_v be_v by_o addition_n of_o certain_a accident_n of_o glory_n that_o shall_v accrue_v unto_o it_o ans_fw-fr which_o can_v be_v separate_v as_o accident_n may_v be_v from_o their_o subject_n but_o they_o endure_v with_o it_o continual_o and_o that_o consist_v 1._o partly_o in_o that_o goodly_a proportion_n that_o i_o speak_v of_o before_o wherein_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v raise_v in_o one_o size_n not_o as_o they_o be_v now_o where_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n but_o all_o shall_v be_v of_o one_o stature_n and_o perfection_n and_o therein_o they_o shall_v more_o resemble_v the_o image_n of_o god_n then_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v in_o great_a variety_n 2._o second_o another_o quality_n wherewith_o they_o shall_v be_v endow_v be_v the_o clearness_n and_o brightness_n of_o those_o body_n for_o although_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v transparent_a and_o translucent_a which_o be_v no_o property_n of_o a_o true_a body_n yet_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o full_a of_o light_n and_o gloriousnesse_n as_o the_o lord_n jesus_n his_o body_n be_v when_o he_o be_v transfigure_v in_o mount_n tabor_n his_o garment_n do_v so_o shine_v that_o no_o dyer_n or_o fuller_n in_o the_o earth_n be_v able_a to_o make_v such_o a_o tincture_n or_o to_o give_v such_o a_o colour_n and_o gloss_n 17._o mat._n 17._o as_o the_o garment_n of_o our_o lord_n have_v much_o more_o than_o be_v his_o countenance_n glorious_a and_o shine_a and_o if_o in_o the_o old_a law_n 34.30.33_o exod._n 34.30.33_o the_o glory_n of_o moses_n face_n be_v so_o great_a that_o the_o jew_n can_v not_o endure_v to_o look_v upon_o he_o but_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o take_v a_o veil_n and_o cover_v his_o face_n when_o he_o read_v the_o law_n that_o so_o they_o may_v hear_v what_o he_o speak_v without_o astonishment_n much_o more_o shall_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v at_o that_o day_n they_o shall_v be_v all_o lightsome_a they_o shall_v shine_v like_o the_o star_n in_o the_o firmament_n they_o be_v often_o compare_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o star_n which_o can_v be_v number_v three_o another_o quality_n wherein_o they_o shall_v be_v like_a unto_o the_o corn_n the_o corn_n that_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o dead_a grain_n yet_o after_o come_v to_o have_v a_o excellent_a green_a colour_n and_o live_v so_o these_o body_n shall_v exceed_v in_o proportion_n of_o beauty_n there_o be_v great_a difference_n now_o some_o be_v fair_a and_o some_o be_v foul_a creature_n and_o those_o that_o be_v the_o fair_a one_o of_o the_o world_n they_o think_v themselves_o only_o happy_a and_o those_o that_o be_v deform_v they_o think_v they_o have_v better_o be_v unborn_a then_o to_o live_v in_o the_o world_n indeed_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a dejection_n and_o scorn_v to_o a_o natural_a man_n to_o have_v a_o poor_a deform_a body_n therefore_o the_o lord_n shall_v so_o alter_v all_o thing_n in_o that_o day_n that_o every_o man_n shall_v have_v equal_a beauty_n the_o glorious_a saint_n in_o heaven_n their_o perfection_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o perfection_n they_o shall_v have_v a_o common_a perfection_n like_o the_o angel_n that_o wait_v before_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o seraphin_n that_o have_v the_o self_n same_o perfection_n and_o beauty_n shine_v upon_o they_o all_o although_o it_o be_v not_o sensible_a to_o we_o but_o be_v see_v only_o among_o themselves_o four_o all_o this_o gloss_n stature_n and_o goodliness_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v except_o it_o have_v also_o strength_n and_o vigour_n it_o be_v little_a worth_n therefore_o god_n shall_v give_v they_o that_o too_o that_o as_o the_o corn_n rise_v with_o a_o high_a stalk_n to_o a_o goodly_a stem_n and_o have_v knop_n to_o underproppe_n and_o support_v and_o keep_v it_o up_o whereupon_o it_o be_v build_v so_o the_o lord_n say_v 3.12_o rev._n 3.12_o he_o that_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o will_v make_v he_o a_o pillar_n in_o the_o house_n of_o his_o father_n that_o be_v he_o shall_v have_v the_o strength_n and_o glory_n and_o the_o fortitude_n of_o the_o great_a man_n of_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o god_n shall_v assign_v he_o to_o with_o great_a dexterity_n and_o all_o this_o with_o a_o further_a grace_n of_o incorruption_n for_o the_o seed_n that_o be_v sow_v although_o it_o come_v up_o with_o a_o fair_a gloss_n for_o a_o time_n yet_o it_o present_o corrupt_v and_o be_v bring_v unto_o a_o dry_a straw_n and_o stubble_n and_o that_o which_o be_v green_a now_o to_o morrow_n it_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o fire_n but_o the_o lord_n shall_v give_v unto_o this_o glorious_a gloss_n whereunto_o he_o shall_v bring_v the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n he_o shall_v give_v they_o a_o incorruptible_a crown_n 1.18_o 1._o pet._n 1.18_o it_o be_v a_o crown_n that_o be_v incorruptible_a a_o inheritance_n immortal_a that_o never_o have_v any_o change_n the_o best_a beauty_n in_o this_o worldly_a glory_n a_o fit_a of_o a_o ague_n will_v change_v it_o and_o long_a sickness_n will_v turn_v the_o fair_a rose_n into_o a_o ashy_a coal_n there_o be_v nothing_o so_o subject_a to_o change_v and_o alteration_n as_o the_o gloss_n of_o beauty_n but_o that_o strength_n and_o beauty_n and_o goodliness_n of_o the_o creature_n after_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v be_v support_v by_o that_o ever_o mighty_a power_n of_o almighty_a god_n so_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o old_a age_n to_o draw_v wrinkle_n in_o the_o face_n of_o his_o saint_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o sickness_n to_o
make_v they_o wither_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o grief_n of_o heart_n no_o discontent_n of_o mind_n to_o make_v a_o alteration_n in_o the_o outward_a man_n there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o to_o make_v a_o change_n because_o god_n shall_v crown_v they_o in_o heaven_n with_o incorruption_n and_o last_o the_o lord_n shall_v give_v they_o another_o quality_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o rare_a of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o that_o be_v a_o strange_a agility_n and_o nimbleness_n of_o body_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o move_v upward_o or_o downward_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v they_o while_o we_o be_v here_o in_o this_o life_n we_o have_v heavy_a body_n a_o man_n must_v walk_v upon_o his_o own_o foundation_n he_o must_v have_v the_o scaffold_n of_o the_o earth_n under_o he_o but_o if_o he_o presume_v any_o further_a and_o offer_v to_o go_v any_o high_a with_o daedalus_n and_o with_o icarus_n he_o shall_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n he_o expose_v himself_o unto_o danger_n and_o his_o waxen_a wing_n will_v be_v fire_v by_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n but_o then_o at_o that_o day_n though_o our_o body_n in_o all_o thing_n substantial_a shall_v be_v like_o these_o and_o shall_v still_o be_v true_a body_n yet_o the_o glory_n of_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o great_a and_o the_o strength_n and_o power_n that_o the_o spirit_n shall_v have_v over_o this_o flesh_n shall_v be_v so_o absolute_a as_o to_o command_v it_o which_o way_n it_o please_v when_o we_o move_v now_o either_o we_o go_v forward_o or_o backward_o or_o sideways_o or_o else_o downward_o but_o upward_o we_o can_v but_o then_o the_o lord_n shall_v give_v we_o ability_n to_o move_v upward_o too_o and_o this_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o shall_v be_v take_v we_o shall_v be_v snatch_v up_o to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o cloud_n 4.17_o 1._o thes_n 4.17_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o mighty_a power_n and_o prevalencie_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n to_o rule_v and_o command_v the_o body_n the_o lord_n have_v give_v we_o instance_n of_o it_o in_o some_o thing_n in_o the_o gospel_n 26.29_o mat._n 14_o 26.29_o our_o lord_n himself_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n and_o not_o only_o he_o himself_o but_o he_o give_v peter_n power_n to_o walk_v with_o he_o and_o this_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o that_o he_o mean_v to_o do_v at_o the_o day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n as_o their_o body_n then_o walk_v and_o be_v sustain_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o the_o air_n and_o be_v able_a to_o make_v that_o which_o be_v fluent_a and_o soft_a and_o yield_v in_o itself_o to_o make_v it_o a_o solid_a pavement_n like_a unto_o the_o stone_n to_o walk_v upon_o the_o same_o power_n shall_v also_o work_v in_o our_o body_n that_o agility_n which_o be_v in_o the_o eagle_n so_o the_o prophet_n speak_v yea_o our_o lord_n compare_v we_o where_o he_o say_v where_o the_o body_n be_v 24.28_o mat._n 24.28_o thither_o will_v the_o eagle_n resort_n which_o be_v mean_v not_o only_o of_o a_o spiritual_a flight_n by_o faith_n but_o also_o of_o the_o body_n assumption_n and_o this_o our_o lord_n confirm_v by_o the_o ascension_n of_o his_o own_o body_n 14.2_o job._n 14.2_o for_o he_o go_v before_o to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o we_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o now_o we_o know_v that_o his_o body_n ascend_v to_o heaven_n it_o have_v the_o power_n to_o move_v upward_o as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o way_n we_o have_v example_n of_o it_o also_o in_o henoch_n and_o elias_n which_o be_v both_o translate_v elias_n carry_v in_o a_o fiery_a car_n to_o heaven_n 2.11_o 2._o king_n 2.11_o and_o all_o this_o with_o eternity_n and_o immortality_n that_o there_o shall_v not_o any_o thing_n of_o it_o pass_v away_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o expectation_n of_o death_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o fear_n of_o change_n this_o be_v the_o great_a thing_n of_o all_o when_o god_n shall_v give_v fullness_n of_o glory_n to_o have_v also_o full_a security_n for_o whatsoever_o glory_n man_n have_v in_o this_o world_n so_o long_o as_o they_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o worme●hat_o ●hat_z can_v gnaw_v it_o or_o that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o be_v out_v this_o glory_n be_v nothing_o because_o it_o be_v glory_n that_o may_v be_v no_o glory_n such_o be_v the_o state_n of_o these_o worldly_a thing_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o great_a but_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o be_v bring_v from_o that_o greatness_n but_o the_o lord_n shall_v give_v this_o glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o as_o himself_o be_v he_o that_o be_v eternal_a in_o himself_o he_o be_v eternal_a to_o all_o those_o that_o he_o shall_v make_v his_o follower_n and_o companion_n in_o that_o bless_a kingdom_n for_o they_o also_o shall_v receive_v that_o part_n of_o eternity_n as_o far_o as_o they_o be_v capable_a it_o be_v this_o safety_n and_o security_n that_o make_v this_o blessing_n amiable_a and_o for_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v we_o a_o example_n for_o security_n in_o scripture_n where_o for_o forty_o year_n together_o in_o the_o wilderness_n the_o lord_n so_o provide_v that_o there_o be_v no_o man_n clothes_n that_o be_v rend_v or_o wear_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o sole_n of_o his_o shoe_n impair_v by_o that_o long_a and_o tedious_a travel_n we_o see_v also_o they_o have_v security_n of_o food_n continual_o it_o never_o cease_v to_o follow_v they_o but_o in_o convenient_a time_n be_v still_o administer_v to_o they_o therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o god_n that_o can_v do_v these_o thing_n for_o garment_n for_o these_o rag_n that_o we_o wear_v upon_o our_o body_n he_o mean_v much_o more_o to_o do_v it_o to_o the_o body_n themselves_o as_o christ_n say_v be_v not_o the_o body_n better_o than_o raiment_n 6.25_o mat._n 6.25_o then_o garment_n see_v therefore_o that_o he_o do_v it_o unto_o garment_n that_o be_v of_o far_o less_o worth_a will_v he_o not_o do_v it_o unto_o the_o body_n themselves_o he_o that_o keep_v their_o garment_n 40._o year_n without_o wear_v and_o yet_o what_o wear_v so_o soon_o as_o a_o garment_n he_o be_v able_a to_o have_v do_v it_o for_o eternity_n if_o it_o have_v please_v he_o but_o god_n give_v they_o that_o for_o a_o instance_n to_o show_v that_o these_o thing_n belong_v in_o a_o high_a nature_n and_o degree_n and_o measure_n to_o the_o set_v forth_o of_o the_o lif●●ternall_a and_o be_v to_o foreshow_v and_o to_o be_v a_o earnest_n of_o that_o infinite_a glory_n which_o god_n have_v repose_v for_o they_o that_o wait_v for_o the_o come_n of_o his_o son_n which_o the_o lord_n work_v for_o we_o all_o etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 15.39_o all_o flesh_n be_v not_o the_o same_o flesh_n but_o there_o be_v one_o flesh_n of_o man_n there_o be_v another_o flesh_n of_o beast_n another_o of_o fish_n and_o another_o of_o fowl_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o plain_a and_o easy_a than_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n they_o be_v know_v to_o every_o man_n by_o experience_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o find_v out_o the_o intent_n and_o reason_n why_o they_o be_v utter_v divers_a man_n have_v diverse_o comment_v upon_o they_o for_o some_o think_v as_o tertullian_n tertull._n tertull._n &_o other_o that_o follow_v he_o that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o as_o he_o seem_v to_o do_v of_o the_o flesh_n of_o beast_n and_o of_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n and_o of_o fish_n and_o bird_n but_o by_o a_o allegory_n comprehend_v some_o other_o thing_n concern_v the_o diversity_n and_o degree_n of_o man_n and_o so_o he_o interpret_v the_o flesh_n of_o man_n that_o be_v of_o holy_a and_o just_a and_o good_a man_n there_o be_v one_o flesh_n of_o man_n that_o be_v of_o holy_a man_n for_o they_o be_v proper_o to_o be_v call_v man_n a_o man_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o he_o be_v unholy_a so_o far_o forth_o he_o come_v short_a of_o a_o man_n and_o those_o be_v only_o true_o and_o real_o man_n that_o be_v good_a and_o then_o by_o the_o flesh_n of_o beast_n he_o say_v the_o apostle_n mean_v the_o flesh_n of_o beastly_a heathen_a man_n the_o flesh_n of_o ethnic_n of_o those_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o god_n those_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o christ_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n he_o say_v such_o be_v beast_n for_o they_o differ_v not_o world_n he_o say_v such_o be_v beast_n for_o they_o differ_v not_o from_o beast_n neither_o in_o their_o sense_n nor_o in_o their_o conversation_n then_o for_o the_o three_o there_o be_v another_o flesh_n of_o fish_n he_o say_v by_o fish_n be_v mean_v those_o that_o be_v baptize_v and_o regenerate_v by_o water_n the_o fish_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 4.19_o mat._n 4.19_o whereof_o he_o say_v to_o his_o disciple_n i_o will_v make_v
our_o head_n 104.1_o psal_n 104.1_o god_n have_v draw_v out_o the_o heaven_n as_o a_o curtain_n that_o it_o may_v be_v full_a of_o glorious_a star_n and_o every_o star_n give_v a_o certain_a document_n and_o lesson_n of_o this_o that_o he_o treat_v of_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o resurrection_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o nature_n void_a but_o all_o proclaim_v this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o he_o prove_v that_o look_v what_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o the_o body_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o those_o body_n that_o be_v here_o in_o earth_n the_o same_o difference_n there_o shall_v be_v between_o the_o body_n that_o shall_v be_v then_o and_o the_o body_n that_o be_v now_o and_o although_o there_o be_v in_o some_o body_n that_o be_v in_o this_o world_n as_o in_o the_o body_n of_o prince_n and_o the_o body_n of_o beautiful_a man_n and_o woman_n a_o rare_a lustre_n and_o a_o goodly_a glory_n a_o marvellous_a feature_n and_o a_o stamp_n of_o god_n image_n incomparable_a yet_o in_o comparison_n of_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v it_o be_v nothing_o that_o body_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v do_v as_o far_o surpass_v this_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v suppose_v it_o the_o fair_a and_o most_o delicate_a body_n in_o the_o world_n as_o the_o lightsome_a star_n do_v pass_v the_o poor_a stone_n on_o the_o earth_n or_o any_o common_a form_n and_o figure_n in_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o so_o much_o transcend_v by_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o star_n as_o the_o body_n in_o the_o resurrection_n do_v transcend_v and_o surmount_v the_o glory_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v see_v here_o below_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o word_n now_o that_o we_o may_v proceed_v in_o order_n first_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v comparison_n division_n into_o 2._o comparison_n how_o he_o draw_v this_o argument_n from_o heavenly_a body_n and_o compare_v they_o with_o earthly_a body_n wherein_o he_o give_v the_o preferment_n to_o the_o heavenly_a body_n in_o these_o word_n where_o he_o say_v there_o be_v not_o the_o same_o glory_n to_o the_o one_o as_o to_o the_o other_o there_o be_v one_o glory_n of_o the_o heavenly_a and_o another_o of_o the_o earthly_a that_o be_v there_o be_v a_o far_o inferior_a glory_n of_o the_o earthly_a in_o comparison_n of_o that_o which_o be_v heavenly_a then_o second_o he_o make_v a_o comparison_n of_o the_o heavenly_a body_n among_o themselves_o that_o as_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o stone_n upon_o the_o earth_n so_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n one_o with_o another_o not_o only_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o earth_n which_o can_v make_v no_o comparison_n with_o they_o but_o in_o comparison_n one_o with_o another_o as_o they_o be_v in_o heaven_n some_o of_o they_o be_v of_o one_o magnitude_n and_o some_o of_o another_o some_o of_o they_o be_v of_o one_o lustre_n and_o some_o of_o another_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n there_o also_o some_o of_o the_o father_n have_v understand_v this_o of_o the_o different_a state_n of_o glory_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o heaven_n in_o the_o first_o similitude_n they_o say_v the_o glory_n that_o shall_v be_v reveal_v upon_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v as_o infinite_o beyond_o all_o the_o glory_n that_o be_v now_o as_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o star_n in_o heaven_n excel_v the_o glory_n here_o on_o earth_n and_o for_o the_o other_o point_n of_o difference_n in_o the_o star_n themselves_o thereby_o be_v signify_v that_o the_o just_a shall_v all_o shine_v in_o heaven_n as_o star_n but_o in_o a_o different_a manner_n as_o the_o star_n do_v now_o one_o star_n differ_v from_o another_o in_o glory_n and_o so_o he_o conclude_v all_o this_o parable_n and_o similitude_n so_o be_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a that_o be_v even_o as_o we_o see_v these_o earthly_a thing_n to_o be_v far_o exceed_v by_o the_o heavenly_a in_o all_o kind_n of_o beauty_n in_o all_o kind_n of_o glory_n in_o all_o kind_n of_o durabilitie_n and_o in_o all_o kind_n of_o quality_n which_o be_v commendable_a so_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v be_v that_o be_v the_o body_n that_o shall_v rise_v then_o shall_v far_o exceed_v these_o that_o be_v now_o as_o far_o as_o heavenly_a thing_n exceed_v earthly_a thing_n and_o even_o as_o now_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o star_n that_o all_o be_v not_o alike_o in_o glory_n and_o all_o have_v not_o a_o like_a lustre_n nor_o like_a power_n and_o influence_n so_o then_o in_o the_o resurrection_n there_o shall_v be_v difference_n and_o degree_n every_o man_n shall_v have_v enough_o yet_o notwithstanding_o every_o man_n shall_v not_o have_v the_o same_o of_o these_o thing_n brief_o and_o in_o order_n as_o it_o shall_v please_v the_o lord_n to_o give_v assistance_n and_o first_o concern_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o apostle_n argument_n comparison_n 1._o part_n or_o comparison_n he_o take_v it_o now_o from_o heavenly_a body_n the_o high_a a_o man_n go_v in_o the_o body_n of_o nature_n the_o more_o he_o learn_v and_o the_o better_a he_o see_v the_o work_n of_o he_o that_o be_v the_o author_n of_o nature_n the_o creator_n himself_o there_o be_v a_o great_a mystery_n great_a power_n of_o instruction_n in_o the_o work_n of_o god_n rom._n 1._o the_o wisdom_n and_o majesty_n of_o god_n be_v see_v in_o his_o work_n but_o than_o be_v he_o best_o see_v when_o a_o man_n do_v ascend_v and_o rise_v up_o the_o scale_n and_o proceed_v from_o low_a work_n to_o high_a for_o even_o as_o he_o that_o climb_v to_o the_o high_a top_n of_o a_o hill_n may_v see_v the_o further_a off_o so_o he_o that_o ascend_v in_o the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o the_o dispose_n of_o the_o world_n the_o more_o he_o advance_v the_o more_o clear_o he_o see_v and_o the_o great_a revelation_n be_v make_v unto_o he_o all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n they_o be_v great_a master_n and_o teacher_n unto_o we_o if_o we_o will_v learn_v any_o thing_n there_o be_v nothing_o so_o dull_a there_o be_v nothing_o so_o poor_a but_o it_o be_v able_a to_o teach_v we_o but_o yet_o among_o the_o rest_n there_o be_v nothing_o comparable_a to_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o fair_a book_n and_o the_o goodly_a volume_n wherein_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v express_v above_o all_o other_o thing_n as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v 19.3_o psal_n 19.3_o the_o heaven_n declare_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o firmament_n show_v his_o handy_a work_n there_o be_v no_o voice_n nor_o language_n in_o the_o earth_n wherein_o the_o speech_n of_o heaven_n be_v not_o hear_v as_o there_o be_v no_o angle_n nor_o corner_n that_o be_v hide_v from_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n 6._o verse_n 6._o and_o from_o the_o heat_n and_o power_n of_o the_o sun_n but_o he_o search_v it_o out_o so_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o be_v endue_v with_o any_o sense_n but_o he_o be_v teach_v by_o that_o heat_n and_o light_n the_o greatness_n of_o the_o almighty_a which_o these_o earthly_a thing_n can_v attain_v unto_o for_o they_o be_v restive_a and_o they_o be_v dull_a they_o be_v contain_v in_o their_o place_n they_o have_v not_o that_o diffuse_a power_n and_o operation_n that_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o star_n have_v to_o work_v every_o where_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o work_n of_o god_n more_o teach_v and_o instruct_v than_o the_o book_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o saint_n paul_n now_o make_v his_o argument_n from_o the_o strong_a that_o if_o our_o garden_n can_v teach_v we_o and_o if_o our_o seed_n can_v teach_v we_o if_o our_o field_n can_v teach_v we_o and_o if_o our_o flesh_n can_v teach_v we_o even_o this_o flesh_n that_o we_o carry_v about_o we_o if_o these_o can_v teach_v we_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v elementary_a and_o sublunary_a if_o these_o have_v a_o power_n of_o instruction_n no_o doubt_n then_o that_o golden_a book_n that_o rare-volumne_n that_o be_v above_o that_o be_v write_v with_o so_o many_o star_n as_o so_o many_o golden_a letter_n and_o so_o fair_o write_v 2.2_o hab._n 2.2_o that_o he_o that_o run_v may_v read_v it_o no_o doubt_n i_o say_v but_o this_o be_v full_a of_o discipline_n and_o can_v much_o more_o easy_o draw_v the_o scholar_n as_o contain_v in_o it_o more_o familiar_a precept_n and_o more_o move_a example_n to_o win_v we_o unto_o god_n his_o comparison_n here_o be_v take_v in_o the_o name_n of_o body_n heavenly_a body_n and_o earthly_a body_n by_o heavenly_a body_n be_v mean_v the_o star_n because_o they_o be_v create_v substance_n and_o not_o imaginary_a thing_n as_o the_o philosopher_n will_v have_v they_o in_o their_o flattery_n and_o foolery_n they_o think_v that_o the_o great_a man_n that_o
it_o to_o that_o high_a perfection_n that_o there_o be_v in_o it_o no_o contradiction_n in_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v here_o below_o one_o element_n fight_v against_o another_o until_o they_o all_o come_v to_o destruction_n the_o best_a beauty_n in_o the_o world_n at_o the_o last_o the_o earth_n work_v all_o the_o other_o element_n out_o and_o by_o a_o melancholy_n adust_a humour_n it_o bring_v the_o high_a spirit_n the_o mighty_a strength_n and_o noble_a resolution_n it_o dissolve_v it_o and_o so_o bring_v it_o to_o its_o foot_n that_o earth_n it_o must_v be_v it_o turn_v all_o to_o earth_n and_o ash_n yea_o the_o very_a gold_n that_o seem_v to_o outvie_v time_n and_o to_o last_v always_o yet_o it_o come_v at_o last_o to_o be_v consume_v by_o rust_n as_o one_o say_v of_o he_o that_o make_v his_o gold_n his_o god_n what_o a_o miserable_a god_n say_v he_o be_v that_o which_o can_v defend_v himself_o from_o rust_n and_o although_o it_o wear_v long_o and_o be_v the_o most_o compact_a thing_n in_o nature_n and_o though_o it_o can_v endure_v the_o fire_n and_o be_v never_o the_o worse_o yet_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o something_o which_o in_o time_n will_v consume_v and_o devour_v it_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o mixture_n of_o it_o for_o it_o be_v make_v of_o the_o four_o element_n and_o they_o have_v that_o discordance_n among_o themselves_o that_o at_o the_o last_o one_o work_n out_o another_o but_o in_o the_o star_n and_o the_o glory_n that_o be_v above_o there_o be_v no_o enemy_n no_o adversary_n but_o it_o be_v a_o pure_a glory_n of_o itself_o without_o any_o mixture_n so_o far_o it_o do_v transcend_v and_o exceed_v all_o the_o glory_n that_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n again_o it_o be_v more_o excellent_a in_o respect_n of_o duration_n for_o the_o glory_n that_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n be_v but_o a_o blast_n but_o the_o glory_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n be_v the_o same_o always_o in_o these_o earthly_a thing_n there_o be_v a_o change_n god_n change_v they_o as_o a_o garment_n but_o the_o heavenly_a thing_n they_o continue_v still_o and_o although_o they_o also_o shall_v be_v change_v and_o the_o lord_n shall_v fold_v they_o up_o 1.12_o heb._n 1.12_o because_o he_o only_o remain_v forever_o yet_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o we_o see_v there_o be_v no_o change_n in_o they_o but_o they_o be_v still_o as_o they_o be_v before_o for_o in_o precious_a stone_n and_o pearl_n which_o i_o think_v the_o apostle_n have_v some_o reference_n unto_o in_o this_o place_n he_o compare_v the_o star_n to_o precious_a stone_n which_o be_v the_o most_o goodly_a thing_n in_o the_o earth_n and_o those_o thing_n wherein_o god_n have_v set_v a_o emblem_n of_o the_o star_n and_o draw_v the_o picture_n of_o heaven_n although_o there_o be_v much_o glory_n in_o they_o yet_o some_o of_o they_o be_v so_o dark_a of_o themselves_o that_o their_o glory_n come_v unto_o they_o by_o accident_n as_o the_o diamond_n which_o of_o itself_o be_v black_a and_o except_o by_o cut_v the_o angle_n the_o line_n reflect_v one_o upon_o another_o and_o be_v multiply_v there_o be_v no_o glory_n in_o it_o so_o the_o light_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o diamond_n be_v not_o of_o itself_o but_o from_o the_o light_n that_o be_v above_o and_o be_v only_o by_o accident_n because_o of_o the_o cut_n and_o proportion_n of_o one_o part_n with_o another_o and_o so_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o these_o precious_a jewel_n and_o orient_a pearl_n in_o the_o world_n their_o light_n be_v from_o that_o light_n which_o be_v above_o and_o only_o in_o reflection_n of_o that_o light_n and_o for_o their_o duration_n they_o can_v hold_v and_o keep_v time_n with_o that_o glory_n which_o be_v in_o the_o heavenly_a body_n for_o the_o light_n and_o brightness_n which_o be_v in_o jewel_n have_v a_o old_a age_n a_o time_n of_o fade_a therefore_o the_o philosopher_n speak_v of_o a_o old_a age_n of_o jewel_n and_o pearl_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o natural_a power_n be_v exhale_v by_o a_o certain_a force_n or_o else_o rather_o i_o think_v because_o that_o the_o outward_a air_n bring_v a_o kind_n of_o slough_n upon_o it_o that_o dull_v the_o jewel_n and_o make_v it_o that_o it_o can_v show_v so_o bright_a as_o it_o be_v before_o and_o chief_o because_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o it_o as_o in_o other_o thing_n grow_v to_o the_o centre_n as_o we_o see_v in_o a_o apple_n which_o be_v full_a when_o it_o be_v green_a but_o when_o it_o be_v keep_v long_o than_o the_o pulp_n or_o the_o flesh_n of_o it_o go_v to_o the_o core_n and_o leave_v the_o skin_n wither_v and_o wrinkle_a and_o destitute_a so_o it_o be_v in_o gem_n and_o jewel_n the_o power_n of_o it_o incline_v inward_a as_o scaliger_n scaliger_n scaliger_n say_v that_o he_o have_v a_o loadstone_n and_o other_o stone_n that_o have_v so_o lose_v the_o power_n attractive_a that_o it_o can_v not_o draw_v until_o he_o break_v it_o in_o the_o midst_n and_o then_o that_o part_n which_o be_v inward_a have_v the_o attractive_a power_n which_o it_o have_v before_o but_o the_o outside_n be_v dull_v but_o now_o the_o glory_n that_o be_v above_o in_o the_o star_n that_o be_v not_o dull_v by_o any_o of_o these_o contrary_n or_o adversary_n but_o it_o still_o shine_v in_o its_o own_o brightness_n and_o clearness_n it_o be_v not_o the_o worse_a for_o wear_v therefore_o this_o glory_n it_o be_v more_o excellent_a because_o it_o be_v more_o durable_a it_o be_v more_o transcendent_a there_o be_v one_o glory_n of_o the_o heavenly_a and_o another_o of_o the_o earthly_a and_o last_o the_o glory_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v that_o they_o be_v full_a of_o action_n full_a of_o life_n and_o operation_n but_o these_o earthly_a thing_n be_v nothing_o but_o very_a idleness_n as_o it_o be_v a_o non-agency_a they_o do_v nothing_o but_o be_v mere_o restive_a not_o have_v power_n to_o stir_v the_o glory_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n if_o they_o stir_v and_o move_v they_o move_v to_o their_o own_o destruction_n and_o they_o be_v every_o day_n more_o subject_a to_o decadency_n as_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o pearl_n and_o jewel_n it_o must_v rest_v in_o a_o place_n unless_o it_o be_v carry_v it_o can_v carry_v and_o help_v itself_o nor_o work_v its_o operation_n therefore_o man_n must_v carry_v they_o as_o the_o prophet_n say_v of_o idol_n that_o they_o can_v stir_v till_o the_o idolater_n carry_v they_o so_o those_o idolater_n that_o worship_v their_o gold_n they_o must_v carry_v it_o or_o else_o it_o can_v stir_v of_o itself_o but_o the_o glorious_a body_n that_o be_v above_o they_o move_v in_o a_o infinite_a strange_a variety_n and_o be_v of_o wondrous_a operation_n so_o that_o when_o they_o meet_v together_o in_o some_o point_n they_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n it_o be_v a_o strange_a and_o terrible_a thing_n to_o imagine_v what_o may_v be_v prognosticate_v and_o true_o foretell_v by_o the_o meeting_n and_o by_o the_o constellation_n of_o the_o star_n there_o be_v no_o great_a meeting_n in_o the_o world_n no_o great_a war_n no_o deluge_n or_o inundation_n of_o water_n but_o a_o wise_a man_n may_v without_o any_o meddle_v with_o the_o devil_n by_o the_o meeting_n and_o constellation_n of_o the_o star_n tell_v when_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o the_o lord_n have_v set_v a_o infinite_a glory_n in_o these_o heavenly_a body_n he_o have_v give_v they_o a_o perpetual_a motion_n that_o they_o never_o rest_v but_o they_o whirl_v about_o the_o earth_n in_o a_o indefatigable_a course_n they_o be_v always_o quiet_a and_o yet_o they_o never_o rest_v their_o circular_a motion_n be_v their_o joy_n and_o all_o their_o rest_n be_v in_o their_o move_n and_o stir_v so_o that_o in_o these_o regard_n the_o apostle_n say_v there_o be_v one_o glory_n of_o the_o heavenly_a and_o another_o glory_n of_o the_o earthly_a and_o now_o he_o come_v and_o express_v himself_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o this_o and_o speak_v to_o our_o capacity_n more_o plain_o than_o he_o do_v before_o for_o say_v he_o there_o be_v one_o glory_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o another_o glory_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o another_o glory_n of_o the_o star_n for_o one_o star_n differ_v from_o another_o in_o glory_n this_o now_o be_v the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o comparison_n wherein_o he_o leave_v the_o earthly_a thing_n and_o meddle_v no_o more_o with_o they_o every_o man_n know_v what_o infinite_a difference_n there_o be_v there_o but_o now_o he_o wish_v we_o to_o consider_v what_o great_a difference_n there_o be_v in_o the_o heavenly_a thing_n that_o see_v god_n have_v make_v every_o where_o a_o variety_n therefore_o we_o shall_v not_o think_v it_o much_o that_o god_n shall_v do_v so_o also_o at_o the_o resurrection_n for_o we_o must_v not_o
imagine_v that_o those_o body_n that_o die_v crooked_a shall_v rise_v crooked_a nor_o that_o those_o body_n that_o die_v weak_a and_o lame_a and_o young_a shall_v rise_v so_o but_o god_n shall_v make_v a_o great_a variety_n there_o because_o he_o have_v make_v a_o wondrous_a variety_n here_o there_o be_v one_o glory_n of_o the_o sun_n i_o will_v not_o show_v my_o infancy_n in_o discourse_v of_o these_o thing_n but_o only_o give_v a_o touch_n and_o so_o pass_v to_o the_o hypothesis_n where_o the_o apostle_n say_v so_o be_v the_o resurrection_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o the_o glory_n in_o heaven_n all_o the_o create_a body_n we_o see_v be_v nothing_o comparable_a he_o be_v that_o great_a giant_n that_o god_n have_v set_v in_o his_o chamber_n which_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o run_v his_o course_n 19.5_o psal_n 19.5_o the_o great_a messenger_n of_o the_o world_n which_o search_v and_o view_v and_o give_v intelligence_n of_o all_o nation_n and_o report_v of_o they_o to_o god_n from_o who_o heat_n there_o be_v no_o nation_n nor_o latitude_n of_o people_n can_v be_v hide_v his_o glory_n be_v this_o that_o he_o be_v both_o the_o chief_a of_o all_o the_o heavenly_a body_n and_o that_o this_o glory_n be_v his_o own_o too_o first_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a you_o know_v as_o the_o philosopher_n say_v well_o if_o it_o be_v not_o for_o the_o sun_n whatsoever_o the_o moon_n and_o star_n can_v do_v we_o shall_v have_v a_o continual_a night_n for_o that_o be_v that_o great_a and_o mighty_a lamp_n of_o the_o world_n wherein_o god_n have_v recollect_v and_o bind_v up_o all_o the_o body_n and_o bulk_n of_o light_n and_o it_o be_v of_o that_o unspeakable_a beauty_n and_o of_o that_o rare_a excellency_n that_o all_o the_o star_n in_o heaven_n borrow_v their_o light_n from_o thence_o so_o that_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o the_o great_a and_o his_o own_o light_n it_o be_v also_o he_o do_v not_o take_v it_o from_o other_o star_n as_o the_o rest_n do_v derive_v their_o light_n from_o he_o but_o god_n take_v that_o light_n which_o he_o make_v the_o four_o day_n before_o for_o the_o light_n be_v the_o first_o thing_n that_o god_n make_v for_o a_o work_n of_o distinction_n it_o be_v a_o chaos_n and_o confusion_n before_o but_o when_o the_o light_n be_v make_v the_o distinction_n do_v appear_v and_o as_o a_o man_n can_v work_v without_o light_n so_o god_n describe_v himself_o unto_o we_o and_o therefore_o he_o make_v light_a for_o himself_o to_o work_v by_o although_o indeed_o he_o be_v light_v itself_o 6.16_o 1_o tim._n 6.16_o and_o dwell_v in_o that_o light_n that_o none_o can_v attain_v unto_o the_o lord_n i_o say_v gather_v that_o light_n which_o be_v in_o the_o creature_n before_o and_o put_v it_o into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o so_o make_v that_o light_n proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o the_o sun_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v a_o power_n to_o diffuse_v and_o communicate_v his_o light_n to_o all_o the_o star_n in_o heaven_n there_o be_v no_o star_n that_o shine_v in_o his_o own_o light_n but_o all_o the_o light_n they_o have_v they_o borrow_v it_o from_o the_o sun_n because_o that_o god_n will_v bring_v all_o the_o light_n to_o one_o head_n and_o principle_n as_o all_o thing_n do_v depend_v and_o have_v their_o be_v in_o one_o god_n and_o this_o very_a beauty_n of_o the_o sun_n which_o we_o know_v be_v the_o great_a and_o the_o goodly_a yet_o it_o be_v not_o always_o alike_o but_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n in_o that_o too_o the_o sun_n shine_v not_o so_o bright_a in_o the_o winter_n as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o summer_n because_o his_o beam_n in_o the_o winter_n be_v not_o so_o direct_v as_o in_o the_o summer_n and_o in_o the_o southern_a part_n of_o the_o world_n where_o the_o sun_n be_v direct_o over_o the_o vertical_a point_n direct_o over_o their_o head_n as_o they_o have_v more_o heat_n so_o they_o have_v a_o far_o great_a light_n than_o we_o that_o have_v but_o a_o oblique_a or_o slant_a or_o side_n way_n beam_n their_o light_n be_v far_o more_o for_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o beam_n so_o be_v the_o proportion_n of_o the_o light_n and_o heat_n in_o the_o winter_n less_o because_o the_o sun_n be_v in_o a_o low_a circle_n and_o though_o he_o be_v near_o the_o earth_n by_o his_o bodily_a presence_n yet_o he_o be_v further_o off_o by_o his_o power_n and_o operation_n and_o in_o summer_n when_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v near_o yet_o he_o be_v farthest_o off_o in_o body_n but_o be_v near_o by_o his_o operation_n because_o of_o the_o directnesse_n of_o his_o beam_n i_o say_v the_o lord_n have_v make_v a_o difference_n in_o the_o beat_n and_o light_n that_o be_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n that_o there_o be_v one_o kind_n of_o heat_n and_o light_n in_o summer_n and_o another_o kind_n in_o winter_n so_o wondrous_o be_v god_n in_o make_v of_o difference_n and_o plant_v variety_n in_o every_o thing_n the_o second_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o moon_n there_o be_v another_o glory_n of_o the_o moon_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o moon_n we_o know_v how_o far_o it_o come_v short_a of_o the_o first_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o sun_n for_o it_o be_v neither_o a_o full_a glory_n neither_o be_v it_o her_o own_o glory_n but_o that_o which_o it_o have_v be_v derive_v from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o in_o the_o day_n time_n when_o the_o sun_n be_v in_o his_o strength_n the_o moon_n be_v like_o a_o cloud_n if_o it_o be_v then_o above_o our_o horizon_n and_o when_o there_o be_v any_o shadow_n by_o the_o interposition_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o shadow_n of_o the_o earth_n do_v so_o drown_v she_o and_o so_o deprive_v she_o of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n for_o the_o time_n that_o either_o total_o or_o in_o so_o many_o part_n she_o be_v utter_o darken_v and_o evermore_o one_o side_n of_o the_o moon_n be_v black_a because_o of_o the_o distance_n of_o the_o sun_n for_o that_o side_n which_o be_v next_o to_o the_o sun_n be_v light_n and_o that_o side_n which_o be_v from_o the_o sun_n be_v as_o a_o black_a cloud_n and_o according_a as_o it_o go_v further_a from_o the_o sun_n or_o come_v near_a to_o he_o because_o her_o motion_n be_v swift_a than_o the_o sun_n for_o she_o do_v that_o in_o a_o month_n which_o the_o sun_n do_v in_o a_o whole_a year_n because_o he_o be_v further_o off_o from_o the_o earth_n according_o i_o say_v as_o she_o come_v near_a to_o he_o or_o go_v further_o off_o so_o be_v her_o light_n sometime_o she_o appear_v to_o be_v half_a light_n sometime_o full_a moon_n and_o sometime_o again_o nothing_o at_o all_o because_o the_o beam_n of_o our_o eye_n can_v discern_v she_o when_o there_o be_v a_o meeting_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o her_o body_n and_o yet_o we_o may_v observe_v what_o a_o wondrous_a variety_n god_n have_v give_v she_o that_o this_o which_o be_v the_o low_a and_o the_o mean_a planet_n in_o the_o heaven_n the_o mean_a star_n and_o the_o least_o of_o all_o other_o although_o it_o be_v the_o least_o and_o the_o black_a and_o most_o unlightsome_a of_o all_o the_o rest_n yet_o the_o lord_n do_v by_o it_o as_o wondrous_a thing_n as_o he_o do_v by_o all_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n nay_o he_o do_v something_o more_o by_o it_o than_o he_o do_v by_o the_o sun_n itself_o for_o all_o the_o rise_n of_o water_n all_o the_o ebb_a and_o flow_v of_o the_o sea_n all_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o blood_n in_o the_o creature_n all_o the_o guydance_n of_o the_o brain_n of_o man_n all_o the_o distemper_n of_o lunatics_n and_o frantic_v and_o whatsoever_o thing_n almost_o be_v in_o the_o tree_n in_o the_o vegetables_n or_o in_o the_o sensible_a thing_n to_o be_v guide_v and_o govern_v they_o be_v dependent_a direct_o upon_o the_o regency_n of_o the_o moon_n so_o that_o although_o it_o have_v a_o lesser_a light_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v near_o it_o have_v a_o more_o wondrous_a operation_n use_v it_o teach_v we_o this_o lesson_n that_o although_o god_n have_v give_v lesser_a gift_n to_o some_o man_n that_o although_o they_o be_v like_o the_o moon_n in_o comparison_n of_o other_o that_o be_v like_o the_o sun_n yet_o because_o they_o be_v near_a home_n because_o they_o look_v to_o their_o charge_n because_o they_o keep_v their_o flock_n because_o they_o look_v to_o their_o family_n that_o god_n have_v put_v unto_o they_o even_o these_o man_n that_o have_v a_o weak_a light_n they_o do_v more_o good_a than_o those_o that_o be_v great_a man_n that_o be_v further_o off_o that_o be_v careless_a and_o negligent_a therefore_o the_o moon_n have_v a_o great_a operation_n be_v near_o
have_v employ_v themselves_o in_o this_o world_n and_o there_o be_v divers_a similitude_n that_o set_v out_o this_o in_o the_o gospel_n 25._o mat._n 25._o as_o of_o he_o that_o receive_v ten_o talent_n and_o be_v make_v lord_n of_o ten_o city_n 19.29_o mat._n 19.29_o of_o he_o that_o sow_n plenteous_o and_o reap_v plenteous_o whereas_o another_o sow_v spare_o of_o he_o that_o offer_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o receive_v a_o hundred-fold_n for_o it_o of_o the_o disciple_n that_o shall_v be_v chief_a and_o prime_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 19.28_o mat._n 19.28_o and_o sit_v upon_o twelve_o throne_n to_o judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n 6.23_o luk_n 6.23_o and_o that_o promise_v that_o the_o lord_n make_v great_a shall_v your_o reward_n be_v in_o heaven_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a reward_n for_o you_o therefore_o it_o seem_v there_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o great_a a_o reward_n for_o other_o man_n as_o for_o the_o apostle_n this_o joy_n be_v accidental_a it_o happen_v to_o they_o because_o they_o have_v wrought_v in_o their_o calling_n because_o they_o have_v be_v diligent_a in_o their_o place_n so_o the_o school_n say_v a_o man_n of_o learning_n which_o be_v a_o accidental_a thing_n for_o learning_n come_v accidental_o it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v substantial_a a_o man_n be_v ●ot_n bear_v with_o learning_n therefore_o they_o say_v according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n which_o a_o man_n have_v use_v well_o in_o this_o world_n he_o shall_v be_v reward_v in_o heaven_n in_o a_o great_a measure_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o substantial_a joy_n he_o shall_v have_v all_o one_o penny_n with_o the_o rest_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o accidental_a joy_n honour_n for_o his_o wisdom_n and_o learning_n and_o for_o his_o almsdeed_n which_o be_v by_o way_n of_o accident_n and_o so_o according_a to_o his_o work_n he_o shall_v have_v a_o reward_n according_a to_o a_o man_n work_n so_o shall_v his_o reward_n be_v this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v very_o true_a although_o i_o can_v well_o see_v how_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o infallible_a ground_n but_o we_o follow_v the_o father_n direction_n saint_n austin_n speak_v of_o the_o purity_n of_o virginity_n aug._n aug._n of_o the_o profess_a virgin_n of_o his_o time_n well_o say_v he_o those_o that_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o common_a immortality_n hereafter_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o great_a reward_n above_o the_o rest_n because_o they_o have_v something_o in_o the_o flesh_n which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o flesh_n they_o have_v something_o in_o the_o flesh_n which_o have_v no_o use_n or_o benefit_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o in_o his_o 146._o epistle_n say_v he_o if_o god_n have_v make_v all_o body_n visible_a and_o these_o visible_a body_n be_v so_o different_a each_o from_o other_o in_o distance_n of_o place_n in_o operation_n and_o power_n and_o in_o evidence_n much_o more_o must_v we_o think_v he_o will_v make_v a_o difference_n at_o the_o day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o although_o all_o shall_v be_v as_o star_n that_o shall_v shine_v in_o the_o firmament_n yet_o all_o shall_v not_o have_v one_o kind_n of_o glory_n and_o of_o lustre_n tertull._n tertull._n and_o tertullian_n how_o shall_v there_o be_v many_o mansion_n in_o god_n house_n how_o do_v christ_n say_v in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o mansion_n 14.2_o job._n 14.2_o except_o it_o be_v for_o the_o variety_n of_o man_n merit_n you_o must_v not_o be_v offend_v for_o this_o word_n merit_n for_o the_o father_n in_o old_a time_n take_v it_o not_o in_o a_o proud_a sense_n but_o for_o the_o deed_n do_v in_o the_o flesh_n whether_o good_a or_o evil_n so_o man_n shall_v be_v reward_v according_a to_o their_o work_n or_o fruit_n they_o have_v do_v the_o saint_n shall_v differ_v as_o one_o have_v have_v great_a work_n than_o another_o and_o great_a deed_n and_o chrysostome_n bring_v this_o argument_n that_o unless_o this_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n shall_v have_v a_o different_a portion_n of_o glory_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o not_o be_v all_o alike_o it_o will_v make_v man_n that_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n to_o be_v careless_a how_o they_o live_v in_o good_a work_n or_o at_o least_o how_o they_o abound_v in_o good_a work_n because_o when_o a_o man_n once_o see_v salvation_n that_o it_o be_v common_a and_o that_o every_o man_n shall_v have_v as_o good_a a_o share_n in_o it_o as_o he_o he_o will_v not_o seek_v to_o be_v better_a than_o his_o fellow_n and_o so_o good_a work_n and_o almsdeed_n will_v grow_v faint_a therefore_o it_o be_v the_o best_a way_n to_o encourage_v they_o and_o to_o make_v they_o open_a and_o enlarge_v themselves_o to_o make_v they_o as_o capable_a as_o they_o can_v that_o god_n may_v fill_v they_o to_o this_o purpose_n the_o father_n have_v a_o comparison_n of_o divers_a vessel_n that_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o water_n and_o all_o be_v fill_v a_o pottle_n be_v fill_v and_o a_o pint_n be_v fill_v and_o yet_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n every_o one_o have_v as_o much_o as_o it_o can_v contain_v but_o yet_o the_o pint_n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o pottle_n so_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v all_o be_v full_a of_o joy_n and_o full_a of_o glory_n but_o according_a to_o their_o capacity_n the_o lord_n shall_v fill_v they_o therefore_o we_o shall_v make_v ourselves_o large_a unto_o god_n that_o god_n may_v fill_v we_o to_o be_v large_o hand_v and_o large_o mind_v and_o large_a heart_a to_o god_n this_o bring_v largeness_n of_o glory_n and_o beauty_n and_o make_v man_n principal_a star_n in_o the_o firmament_n theophilact_fw-mi bring_v another_o reason_n theoph._n theoph._n which_o press_v better_o and_o urge_v further_a than_o this_o if_o we_o mark_v it_o say_v he_o we_o see_v the_o damn_a in_o hell_n have_v a_o different_a torment_n therefore_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n shall_v have_v a_o different_a glory_n the_o other_o be_v plain_a by_o that_o say_n where_o our_o lord_n say_v 11._o matth._n 11._o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o sodom_n and_o gommorrah_n then_o for_o that_o city_n which_o will_v not_o receive_v the_o apostle_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o tyre_n and_o sydon_n then_o for_o chorazin_n and_o bethsaida_n they_o shall_v have_v easy_a torment_n than_o those_o that_o despise_v the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o see_v there_o shall_v be_v a_o inequality_n of_o torment_n and_o that_o those_o that_o be_v cast_v away_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n shall_v have_v a_o divers_a deformity_n they_o shall_v all_o be_v deform_v but_o some_o more_o than_o other_o there_o be_v more_o unworthiness_n in_o some_o body_n according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o so_o it_o follow_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v open_v and_o manifest_v in_o a_o great_a measure_n upon_o one_o man_n then_o upon_o another_o according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o their_o good_a conversation_n &_o repentance_n and_o the_o good_a deed_n that_o they_o have_v do_v in_o the_o flesh_n saint_n ambrose_n ambrose_n ambrose_n also_o discourse_v upon_o this_o argument_n even_o as_o say_v he_o out_o of_o one_o lump_n out_o of_o one_o piece_n and_o clod_n of_o clay_n god_n have_v make_v all_o thing_n but_o yet_o in_o a_o wondrous_a variety_n for_o out_o of_o the_o water_n he_o have_v take_v all_o the_o brightness_n that_o be_v in_o this_o world_n the_o star_n of_o heaven_n be_v bright_a because_o they_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o water_n and_o the_o brightness_n of_o gem_n and_o pearl_n be_v out_o of_o the_o water_n mingle_v with_o earth_n and_o out_o of_o the_o earth_n come_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v obscure_a and_o dark_a so_o the_o lord_n shall_v make_v out_o of_o this_o body_n out_o of_o one_o lump_n and_o mass_n a_o wondrous_a variety_n at_o that_o day_n he_o shall_v make_v some_o as_o those_o that_o bring_v forth_o thirty_o fold_n other_o as_o those_o that_o bring_v forth_o sixty_o and_o some_o as_o those_o that_o bring_v forth_o a_o hundred_o fold_n in_o a_o admirable_a difference_n and_o yet_o all_o shall_v have_v glory_n sufficient_a and_o in_o contentment_n and_o be_v full_a of_o glory_n the_o glory_n shall_v be_v full_a in_o itself_o although_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o great_a as_o other_o and_o saint_n anselme_n anselme_n anselme_n say_v clear_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o way_n for_o chastity_n and_o purity_n to_o shine_v for_o they_o that_o have_v live_v chaste_a in_o wedlock_n and_o another_o way_n for_o virginity_n there_o shall_v be_v one_o way_n for_o a_o man_n that_o give_v little_a out_o of_o much_o and_o another_o way_n for_o he_o that_o like_o the_o poor_a widow_n give_v as_o it_o be_v all_o that_o they_o have_v
in_o luther_n explication_n say_v he_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v so_o strong_a at_o that_o day_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o remove_v church_n out_o of_o their_o place_n with_o their_o finger_n they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o play_v with_o mighty_a mountain_n as_o child_n play_v with_o tennis-ball_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o mighty_a and_o infinite_a power_n to_o work_v upon_o any_o thing_n that_o god_n shall_v set_v they_o about_o or_o that_o shall_v be_v expedient_a for_o they_o but_o these_o kind_n of_o speech_n and_o discourse_n be_v explanatorie_a and_o be_v rather_o for_o recreation_n then_o for_o man_n to_o subscribe_v unto_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v most_o sure_a that_o their_o work_a power_n shall_v be_v great_a and_o admirable_a and_o although_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v infinite_a yet_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o near_o to_o infinite_a as_o can_v be_v devise_v for_o whatsoever_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o put_v in_o their_o mind_n to_o effect_v they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o and_o nothing_o shall_v make_v resistance_n three_o some_o other_o of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o late_a writer_n calvin_n beza_n calvin_n as_o beza_n and_o calvin_n expound_v it_o thus_o it_o be_v raise_v again_o in_o power_n that_o be_v it_o be_v free_v from_o the_o necessity_n of_o nature_n which_o be_v weakness_n for_o the_o life_n of_o man_n here_o in_o this_o world_n must_v be_v sustain_v by_o man_n it_o must_v have_v meat_n and_o drink_v and_o sleep_v and_o rest_n and_o a_o intercourse_n and_o change_n of_o thing_n there_o must_v be_v physic_n and_o medicine_n to_o cure_v his_o disease_n now_o at_o that_o day_n the_o lord_n shall_v so_o temper_v the_o body_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o live_v without_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o it_o shall_v always_o watch_v without_o any_o necessity_n of_o sleep_n as_o st._n austin_n say_v in_o his_o 5._o tom_n the_o 13._o book_n chap._n 23._o although_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v have_v power_n to_o eat_v and_o drink_v in_o that_o world_n yet_o they_o shall_v not_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o it_o they_o may_v do_v it_o if_o they_o will_v but_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o dependency_n upon_o meat_n and_o drink_n as_o now_o they_o have_v in_o this_o world_n so_o it_o shall_v rise_v a_o strong_a body_n that_o little_a strength_n that_o man_n have_v now_o be_v maintain_v by_o meat_n and_o drink_n under_o god_n they_o have_v no_o way_n else_o to_o preserve_v it_o and_o if_o a_o man_n fast_o six_o or_o seven_o day_n he_o must_v needs_o die_v present_o because_o nature_n can_v endure_v no_o further_o abstinence_n and_o beside_o that_o old_a age_n be_v come_v upon_o he_o although_o his_o meat_n be_v most_o delicate_a yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o power_n of_o digestion_n so_o far_o fail_v he_o that_o he_o be_v notable_a to_o concoct_v it_o and_o transmit_v it_o into_o blood_n and_o nature_n as_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o do_v and_o especial_o if_o his_o meat_n grow_v course_n or_o his_o fare_n be_v abate_v then_o we_o know_v that_o the_o best_a and_o most_o singular_a strength_n in_o the_o world_n must_v fade_v and_o fail_v for_o common_o according_a as_o the_o commons_o be_v so_o be_v the_o strength_n so_o our_o life_n be_v a_o mere_a dependence_n upon_o second_o cause_n next_o under_o god_n god_n give_v meat_n a_o power_n to_o nourish_v and_o meat_n by_o a_o secondary_a mean_n nourish_v whereby_o it_o come_v to_o be_v assimilate_v and_o make_v like_a unto_o the_o body_n and_o so_o we_o live_v and_o as_o meat_n grow_v worse_a or_o be_v take_v away_o so_o the_o body_n impair_v and_o when_o for_o a_o long_a time_n it_o be_v not_o able_a to_o master_v the_o meat_n and_o to_o digest_v it_o into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n then_o likewise_o the_o life_n be_v impair_v and_o fall_v but_o the_o strength_n that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v then_o have_v it_o shall_v be_v without_o these_o dependence_n the_o child_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o live_v and_o to_o keep_v their_o strength_n and_o vigour_n and_o fullness_n and_o perfection_n without_o any_o of_o these_o help_n of_o second_o cause_n and_o although_o they_o may_v stoop_v to_o they_o when_o they_o will_v for_o variety_n yet_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o necessity_n of_o they_o aug._n aug._n last_o as_o st._n austin_n say_v in_o his_o 3._o tom_n 13._o book_n chap._n 26._o this_o strength_n say_v he_o that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o i_o take_v to_o be_v special_o this_o that_o whereas_o now_o of_o these_o earthly_a body_n of_o we_o 26.41_o mat._n 26.41_o the_o lord_n jesus_n say_v the_o spirit_n be_v willing_a but_o the_o flesh_n be_v weak_a and_o the_o apostle_n say_v 7.19_o rom._n 7.19_o the_o good_a thing_n that_o i_o will_v do_v that_o i_o do_v not_o and_o the_o evil_a thing_n that_o i_o will_v not_o do_v that_o do_v i_o say_v the_o holy_a father_n i_o take_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v this_o that_o whereas_o now_o the_o strong_a part_n of_o man_n the_o spirit_n be_v willing_a but_o the_o flesh_n be_v weak_a and_o as_o a_o dull_a ass_n the_o lord_n shall_v then_o prepare_v it_o so_o that_o he_o shall_v proportion_v and_o fit_v the_o horse_n to_o his_o rider_n that_o to_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v the_o rider_n and_o commander_n of_o the_o body_n he_o shall_v give_v a_o horse_n of_o metal_n that_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o carry_v it_o to_o all_o action_n whereas_o now_o it_o jade_n and_o tire_n upon_o every_o good_a thing_n the_o spirit_n here_o be_v willing_a but_o the_o flesh_n be_v weak_a but_o there_o shall_v be_v so_o perfect_a a_o concord_n and_o subjection_n of_o the_o flesh_n to_o the_o spirit_n that_o it_o shall_v go_v hand_n in_o hand_n and_o shall_v hold_v pace_n with_o the_o soul_n the_o flesh_n shall_v be_v as_o willing_a to_o do_v god_n service_n as_o the_o spirit_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v that_o wondrous_a transmutation_n of_o quality_n that_o it_o shall_v seem_v rather_o a_o flesh_n make_v of_o spirit_n than_o otherwise_o for_o so_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n it_o be_v sow_v a_o natural_a body_n it_o be_v raise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n it_o be_v sow_v a_o natural_a body_n weakness_n 2._o property_n sow_v in_o weakness_n it_o be_v raise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n this_o be_v the_o last_o difference_n of_o the_o 4._o and_o in_o this_o be_v comprehend_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o for_o he_o comprehend_v in_o the_o first_o word_n natural_a all_o defect_n and_o all_o weakness_n and_o infirmity_n and_o in_o the_o word_n spiritual_a he_o comprehend_v all_o perfection_n and_o augmentation_n that_o god_n shall_v give_v in_o that_o day_n saint_n austin_n say_v beza_n aug._n beza_n a_o natural_a body_n be_v a_o mortal_a body_n beza_n say_v it_o be_v a_o body_n subject_a to_o mutation_n a_o changeable_a body_n a_o body_n it_o be_v compound_v of_o element_n by_o a_o soluble_a composition_n a_o body_n that_o bow_v to_o the_o earth_n that_o go_v to_o the_o centre_n according_a to_o its_o own_o natural_a inclination_n a_o body_n that_o must_v at_o last_o be_v resolve_v into_o its_o principle_n and_o as_o it_o be_v make_v of_o element_n so_o it_o must_v go_v to_o element_n again_o this_o be_v a_o natural_a body_n and_o thus_o we_o know_v it_o be_v with_o every_o body_n in_o the_o world_n for_o though_o there_o must_v be_v a_o change_n of_o they_o that_o survive_v when_o the_o lord_n shall_v come_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v this_o dissolution_n that_o our_o body_n must_v have_v yet_o that_o change_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v shall_v be_v in_o stead_n of_o this_o dissolution_n and_o who_o know_v in_o what_o kind_n it_o shall_v be_v and_o with_o what_o pain_n it_o shall_v be_v no_o doubt_v it_o shall_v be_v no_o great_a prerogative_n above_o we_o and_o although_o they_o shall_v not_o die_v and_o go_v unto_o the_o earth_n as_o we_o do_v yet_o they_o shall_v be_v full_a of_o pang_n and_o horror_n as_o the_o death_n of_o common_a man_n be_v for_o it_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o this_o body_n be_v animal_n and_o have_v no_o better_a a_o principle_n whereby_o it_o live_v than_o the_o soul_n to_o dissolve_v and_o come_v to_o its_o own_o principle_n dust_n to_o dust_n to_o come_v to_o ash_n and_o earth_n according_a to_o god_n decree_n work_v upon_o this_o flesh_n of_o we_o it_o be_v sow_v therefore_o a_o natural_a body_n that_o be_v subject_a to_o change_v and_o corruption_n but_o now_o see_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o be_v raise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n this_o be_v that_o wherein_o the_o apostle_n comprehend_v all_o the_o rest_n to_o persuade_v that_o
there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a body_n all_o the_o rest_n be_v include_v in_o this_o it_o be_v sow_v in_o corruption_n it_o be_v raise_v in_o incorruption_n it_o be_v true_a if_o it_o be_v spiritual_a it_o must_v needs_o be_v incorrupt_a so_o it_o be_v sow_o in_o dishonour_n it_o be_v raise_v in_o honour_n it_o be_v certain_a if_o it_o be_v raise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n and_o so_o for_o strength_n if_o it_o be_v spiritual_a it_o must_v needs_o be_v strong_a therefore_o the_o apostle_n conclude_v all_o in_o this_o it_o shall_v be_v raise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n but_o how_o a_o spiritual_a body_n mark_v he_o say_v not_o that_o the_o flesh_n of_o god_n saint_n the_o body_n that_o shall_v be_v raise_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v spirit_n but_o spiritual_a body_n still_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o body_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o change_n in_o the_o substance_n but_o only_o in_o the_o quality_n and_o property_n tertull._n tertull._n say_v tertullian_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o any_o change_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o nature_n but_o of_o the_o glorious_a quality_n that_o shall_v come_v unto_o it_o sure_o say_v he_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o rise_v again_o but_o that_o which_o be_v sow_v and_o there_o be_v nothing_o sow_v but_o that_o which_o be_v dissolve_v and_o rot_a in_o the_o earth_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o lie_v rot_v in_o the_o earth_n but_o flesh_n therefore_o nothing_o shall_v rise_v again_o but_o the_o flesh_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o the_o sentence_n of_o god_n go_v upon_o but_o the_o flesh_n of_o adam_n dust_n thou_o be_v and_o to_o dust_n thou_o shall_v return_v so_o st._n austin_n expound_v the_o word_n in_o tom._n 5._o aug._n aug._n lib._n 13._o how_o shall_v they_o be_v spiritual_a not_o because_o they_o shall_v cease_v to_o be_v body_n they_o be_v not_o therefore_o call_v spiritual_a as_o though_o they_o be_v turn_v spirit_n and_o cease_v to_o be_v body_n but_o because_o they_o shall_v subsist_v with_o a_o live_n and_o quicken_a spirit_n and_o because_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v indweller_n and_o inhabitant_n of_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o place_n of_o spirit_n it_o shall_v then_o be_v the_o place_n for_o the_o body_n of_o man_n for_o now_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a paradox_n to_o say_v the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n shall_v dwell_v in_o heaven_n and_o though_o we_o know_v that_o christ_n have_v it_o by_o a_o special_a privilege_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o man_n can_v imagine_v how_o the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n shall_v dwell_v in_o heaven_n in_o those_o pure_a sky_n in_o those_o bright_a region_n and_o that_o the_o heaviness_n of_o the_o body_n shall_v not_o praecipitate_v it_o down_o to_o the_o earth_n and_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o fire_n and_o to_o dismal_a event_n that_o shall_v consume_v it_o but_o when_o the_o lord_n shall_v change_v this_o corruption_n into_o incorruption_n the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v the_o only_a fit_a inhabitant_n of_o heaven_n therefore_o it_o be_v call_v spiritual_a because_o it_o shall_v dwell_v in_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o place_n of_o spirit_n the_o body_n shall_v then_o be_v able_a to_o inhabit_v there_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v spiritual_a as_o be_v fit_a to_o possess_v those_o mansion_n that_o be_v destinate_a proper_o for_o spirit_n but_o chrysostome_n make_v a_o question_n here_o say_v he_o chrysost_n chrysost_n what_o be_v this_o that_o thou_o say_v here_o bless_a apostle_n do_v thou_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v not_o spiritual_a now_o be_v they_o all_o mere_o animal_n now_o be_v they_o not_o spiritual_a how_o be_v it_o say_v that_o they_o be_v temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n dwell_v in_o they_o he_o make_v they_o spiritual_a they_o be_v call_v spiritual_a man_n all_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o if_o they_o be_v spiritual_a man_n than_o they_o have_v spiritual_a body_n but_o the_o father_n answer_v himself_o again_o it_o be_v true_a these_o body_n we_o carry_v about_o we_o now_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v after_o a_o sort_n spiritual_a but_o that_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v then_o which_o he_o here_o speak_v of_o shall_v be_v infinite_o far_o more_o spiritual_a this_o be_v only_o in_o inchoation_n in_o beginning_n in_o the_o first_o fruit_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o sum_n and_o substance_n and_o fullness_n of_o perfection_n and_o st._n bernard_n if_o thou_o say_v our_o body_n shall_v rise_v again_o thy_o meaning_n be_v not_o to_o take_v away_o the_o be_v of_o the_o body_n but_o to_o give_v it_o a_o new_a lustre_n as_o the_o face_n of_o moses_n and_o as_o in_o the_o transfiguration_n of_o jesus_n 34._o exod._n 34._o for_o as_o moses_n when_o god_n put_v that_o brightness_n upon_o his_o face_n that_o the_o people_n can_v not_o look_v upon_o it_o but_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o have_v a_o veil_n on_o his_o face_n his_o face_n be_v still_o the_o same_o but_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o change_n of_o glory_n there_o be_v a_o accession_n of_o brightness_n whereby_o it_o seem_v a_o spirit_n rather_o than_o a_o common_a ordinary_a visage_n so_o the_o body_n of_o man_n that_o shall_v be_v raise_v there_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o accession_n and_o augmentation_n of_o glory_n and_o beauty_n and_o brightness_n that_o it_o shall_v rather_o seem_v spiritual_a then_o otherwise_o and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o transfiguration_n of_o christ_n 17._o mar._n 17._o his_o garment_n shine_v that_o no_o dier_n in_o the_o earth_n can_v make_v the_o like_a and_o his_o face_n shine_v as_o the_o sun_n in_o his_o strength_n the_o face_n of_o christ_n be_v all_o one_o &_o his_o garment_n be_v the_o same_o he_o have_v the_o same_o physiognomy_n but_o only_o there_o be_v a_o new_a accession_n of_o glory_n that_o come_v unto_o it_o so_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n they_o shall_v be_v all_o one_o the_o very_a same_o body_n shall_v be_v revive_v which_o have_v suffer_v misery_n here_o and_o shall_v have_v a_o new_a glory_n put_v upon_o it_o and_o that_o very_a body_n shall_v have_v strength_n that_o here_o be_v weak_a and_o subject_a to_o death_n the_o lord_n shall_v then_o clothe_v it_o with_o glory_n and_o although_o it_o shall_v rise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n it_o be_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o change_n of_o the_o substance_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o augmentation_n of_o glory_n which_o shall_v accrue_v unto_o it_o it_o be_v raise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n so_o much_o of_o those_o two_o attribute_n of_o the_o change_n from_o weakness_n to_o strength_n and_o from_o natural_a to_o spiritual_a now_o in_o the_o word_n follow_v the_o apostle_n come_v to_o prove_v that_o such_o a_o thing_n there_o be_v as_o a_o natural_a body_n and_o a_o spiritual_a body_n and_o this_o he_o do_v to_o prevent_v objection_n partly_o lest_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o coin_a new_a distinction_n and_o division_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n faulty_a in_o the_o church_n and_o partly_o lest_o man_n shall_v be_v drown_v in_o error_n by_o misconceive_a his_o doctrine_n for_o the_o first_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v have_v say_v unto_o he_o where_o do_v you_o learn_v this_o do_v you_o ever_o hear_v any_o man_n speak_v such_o a_o thing_n that_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a body_n yes_o say_v the_o apostle_n there_o be_v both_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a body_n and_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a body_n i_o will_v make_v the_o distinction_n good_a and_o prove_v it_o this_o teach_v we_o use_v that_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v careful_a what_o distinction_n they_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o timothy_n 6.21_o 1_o tim._n 6.21_o and_o to_o titus_n shun_v novelty_n of_o word_n and_o invention_n shun_v they_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v they_o destroy_v the_o faith_n and_o puzzle_v the_o understanding_n of_o all_o god_n child_n vincentius_n lirinensis_n lirinensis_n vincentius_n lirinensis_n say_v that_o although_o man_n ought_v to_o speak_v many_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n after_o a_o new_a fashion_n yet_o they_o ought_v to_o speak_v no_o new_a thing_n at_o all_o therefore_o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v offend_v with_o this_o distinction_n as_o though_o the_o apostle_n have_v bring_v it_o out_o of_o his_o own_o brain_n as_o though_o it_o be_v a_o new_a device_n of_o his_o own_o hatch_n he_o be_v force_v to_o make_v it_o good_a and_o to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n because_o he_o will_v not_o be_v think_v a_o inventor_n of_o new_a device_n and_o a_o maker_n of_o new_a distinction_n which_o be_v a_o plague_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n throughout_o all_o age_n second_o another_o reason_n be_v this_o because_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o
live_v in_o sickness_n and_o at_o last_o to_o be_v swallow_v up_o of_o death_n to_o come_v to_o rottenness_n and_o putrefaction_n which_o be_v the_o natural_a conclusion_n of_o all_o body_n that_o live_v in_o this_o world_n this_o course_n god_n have_v appoint_v first_o and_o then_o upon_o this_o god_n will_v make_v his_o power_n glorious_a to_o bring_v the_o body_n from_o dust_n and_o filth_n and_o rottenness_n to_o be_v spiritual_a to_o bring_v it_o to_o sweetness_n and_o glory_n and_o beauty_n this_o be_v his_o order_n therefore_o first_o they_o be_v natural_a body_n miserable_a and_o weak_a and_o obnoxious_a and_o then_o the_o lord_n will_v supervestire_v he_o will_v invest_v they_o with_o that_o glory_n and_o incorruption_n which_o be_v promise_v to_o we_o in_o christ_n so_o much_o for_o that_o point_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o proposition_n and_o the_o order_n now_o for_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o two_o head_n and_o fountain_n they_o be_v lay_v down_o adam_n 2._o part._n the_o comparison_n of_o the_o two_o adam_n as_o the_o causer_n of_o all_o this_o why_o be_v this_o so_o that_o there_o be_v first_o the_o natural_a and_o then_o the_o spiritual_a because_o god_n will_v have_v adam_n the_o natural_a man_n to_o come_v first_o and_o christ_n the_o spiritual_a man_n to_o come_v last_o that_o the_o one_o shall_v be_v the_o first_o of_o man_n the_o other_o the_o last_o and_o that_o they_o two_o shall_v carry_v the_o key_n of_o these_o closert_n and_o treasure_n the_o one_o of_o corruption_n the_o other_o of_o incorruption_n therefore_o from_o they_o depend_v all_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o former_a proposition_n first_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o he_o say_v a_o man_n last_o first_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o order_n and_o succession_n first_o and_o last_o and_o a_o man_n it_o be_v speak_v of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n as_o well_o as_o of_o adam_n so_o that_o they_o be_v both_o man_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o substance_n nay_o the_o second_o adam_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o first_o for_o we_o see_v st._n luke_n in_o his_o genealogy_n luke_n 3._o 3_o luke_n 3_o bring_v christ_n from_o adam_n which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o adam_n which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o that_o manicheus_fw-la and_o valentinus_n and_o martianus_n have_v teach_v we_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n in_o former_a time_n and_o so_o have_v the_o swenckfeldians_a which_o have_v receive_v their_o error_n of_o late_a all_o these_o be_v from_o hence_o condemn_v for_o as_o tertullian_n tertull._n tertull._n say_v why_o be_v christ_n call_v the_o second_o man_n except_o he_o be_v as_o true_a a_o man_n as_o the_o first_o therefore_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o adam_n be_v the_o lord_n christ_n make_v even_o by_o deduction_n of_o nature_n and_o by_o a_o line_n infallible_a to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n although_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o sanctify_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o which_o his_o bless_a body_n be_v to_o be_v make_v and_o because_o that_o there_o be_v no_o intervention_n of_o the_o help_n of_o man_n he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v rank_v in_o the_o common_a generation_n of_o mankind_n for_o he_o be_v not_o bear_v as_o they_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o woman_n that_o be_v after_o the_o natural_a ordinary_a course_n but_o by_o the_o over-shadowing_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n therefore_o in_o this_o regard_n he_o be_v great_a and_o far_o above_o adam_n but_o concern_v the_o material_a part_n of_o his_o body_n which_o he_o take_v of_o the_o virgin_n he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o adam_n and_o so_o the_o second_o man_n or_o the_o last_o adam_n not_o because_o he_o be_v the_o last_o of_o all_o man_n jesus_n christ_n have_v be_v many_o year_n since_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o because_o he_o be_v to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o state_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o new_a state_n after_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n expect_v before_o christ_n there_o be_v the_o state_n of_o nature_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n there_o be_v divers_a kind_n and_o degree_n but_o now_o he_o be_v come_v all_o the_o former_a state_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o law_n be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v recapitulate_v and_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_a 3.11_o colos_n 3.11_o bond_n and_o free_a male_a and_o female_a but_o all_o be_v one_o in_o christ_n jesus_n again_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o last_o adam_n because_o he_o say_v of_o himself_o 1.8_o reu●l_v 1.8_o that_o he_o be_v alpha_n and_o omega_n he_o be_v alpha_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o deity_n and_o he_o be_v omega_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o humanity_n and_o he_o be_v both_o alpha_n and_o omega_n both_o first_o and_o last_o in_o regard_n that_o he_o be_v coequal_a and_o coeternall_a with_o god_n the_o father_n for_o as_o he_o be_v god_n he_o be_v alpha_n the_o beginning_n of_o all_o thing_n create_v he_o be_v the_o first_o bear_v of_o all_o creature_n 1.15_o colos_n 1.15_o and_o as_o he_o be_v omega_n he_o be_v the_o last_o conclusion_n and_o end_n of_o the_o alphabet_n that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o state_n no_o more_o sacrifice_n no_o more_o law_n no_o more_o new_a to_o be_v expect_v in_o the_o world_n but_o that_o which_o a_o christian_a be_v to_o betake_v he_o to_o he_o must_v have_v it_o in_o christ_n or_o not_o at_o all_o and_o all_o other_o be_v deceive_v that_o seek_v for_o any_o other_o name_n than_o that_o 24._o act_n 4_o 24._o for_o there_o be_v no_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v save_v this_o be_v the_o first_o difference_n in_o their_o order_n the_o second_o heaven_n 2._o in_o respect_n of_o their_o place_n earth_n &_o heaven_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v descend_v the_o first_o man_n be_v from_o the_o earth_n earthly_a the_o second_o man_n be_v the_o lord_n himself_o from_o heaven_n heavenly_a the_o place_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v be_v earth_n and_o heaven_n and_o there_o be_v no_o great_a difference_n can_v be_v in_o all_o the_o thing_n in_o nature_n we_o can_v say_v that_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n more_o distant_a than_o these_o two_o nor_o any_o thing_n more_o contrary_a than_o these_o two_o the_o one_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o light_n the_o other_o be_v the_o receptacle_n of_o darkness_n the_o one_o be_v the_o spring_n of_o all_o action_n the_o other_o be_v a_o mere_o passive_a and_o dull_a substance_n the_o one_o be_v the_o cause_n impressive_a the_o other_o be_v the_o cause_n receptive_a the_o one_o be_v the_o original_n and_o fullness_n of_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a the_o other_o be_v participant_a as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v capable_a of_o it_o for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o supreme_a cause_n work_v upon_o it_o so_o much_o it_o be_v prosper_v by_o it_o the_o one_o be_v always_o move_v and_o stir_v and_o whirl_v about_o the_o other_o be_v restive_a and_o not_o able_a to_o stir_v out_o of_o its_o place_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o contrary_a than_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o such_o be_v the_o deduction_n of_o these_o two_o prime_a cause_n but_o how_o be_v adam_n earthly_a more_o than_o christ_n christ_n have_v a_o body_n of_o the_o virgin_n and_o so_o he_o be_v of_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o well_o as_o adam_n and_o how_o be_v christ_n more_o heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a than_o adam_n have_v not_o he_o a_o soul_n and_o spirit_n as_o well_o as_o christ_n how_o can_v these_o thing_n consist_v for_o the_o first_o you_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n be_v where_o he_o say_v that_o adam_n be_v from_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v his_o chief_a power_n and_o ability_n be_v still_o incline_v to_o the_o earth_n that_o he_o be_v frail_a that_o he_o be_v make_v in_o a_o condition_n to_o go_v back_o again_o to_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v his_o destiny_n and_o he_o have_v a_o law_n impose_v upon_o he_o to_o dig_v and_o delve_v the_o earth_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n not_o because_o he_o have_v not_o a_o soul_n from_o heaven_n for_o he_o have_v a_o soul_n from_o heaven_n as_o well_o as_o christ_n have_v but_o because_o he_o be_v draw_v by_o his_o inferior_a part_n by_o his_o body_n which_o be_v his_o earthly_a part_n because_o he_o be_v draw_v by_o that_o from_o the_o contemplation_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o have_v rather_o to_o take_v a_o apple_n with_o his_o wife_n than_o to_o follow_v the_o justice_n and_o uprightness_n of_o god_n because_o he_o decline_v to_o the_o earth_n and_o base_a thing_n and_o leave_v the_o creator_n for_o a_o poor_a creature_n and_o because_o he_o leave_v the_o unchangeable_a good_a
for_o that_o which_o be_v changeable_a therefore_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v unconstant_a base_a and_o earthly_a that_o be_v a_o simple_a poor_a base_a creature_n which_o make_v himself_o according_a to_o his_o prime_a original_n and_o study_v and_o gape_v after_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o earth_n out_o of_o which_o he_o be_v extract_v he_o have_v indeed_o better_a thing_n if_o he_o will_v have_v use_v they_o but_o he_o be_v so_o stupefy_v and_o draw_v back_o to_o his_o inferior_a part_n that_o he_o be_v make_v like_o unto_o his_o first_o material_n the_o earth_n but_o the_o other_o be_v from_o heaven_n not_o because_o he_o have_v not_o a_o body_n from_o the_o earth_n but_o because_o to_o that_o body_n be_v add_v a_o glorious_a divinity_n and_o that_o his_o body_n be_v not_o a_o person_n as_o adam_n be_v for_o if_o the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v a_o person_n he_o must_v have_v be_v liable_a as_o all_o person_n that_o be_v bear_v to_o condemnation_n but_o he_o be_v not_o a_o person_n but_o a_o nature_n unite_v to_o the_o second_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n so_o that_o although_o there_o be_v two_o nature_n in_o christ_n yet_o there_o be_v not_o two_o but_o one_o person_n and_o the_o action_n that_o come_v from_o any_o man_n they_o be_v the_o action_n of_o his_o person_n of_o the_o subject_n and_o not_o the_o action_n of_o his_o nature_n for_o it_o be_v a_o man_n that_o speak_v and_o a_o man_n that_o work_v and_o not_o the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n that_o speak_v or_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n so_o therefore_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o action_n that_o come_v from_o christ_n they_o be_v the_o action_n of_o his_o person_n not_o of_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o of_o his_o person_n and_o so_o they_o be_v the_o action_n of_o god_n and_o man_n that_o be_v of_o that_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n that_o take_v the_o manhood_n unto_o it_o and_o so_o they_o be_v make_v the_o action_n of_o a_o infinite_a merit_n and_o possibility_n herein_o then_o be_v the_o difference_n that_o although_o adam_n have_v a_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o christ_n yet_o he_o have_v only_o a_o live_a soul_n that_o can_v enliven_v no_o body_n but_o himself_o but_o the_o lord_n have_v a_o spirit_n that_o be_v the_o deity_n itself_o which_o be_v able_a to_o give_v life_n which_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o life_n to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o although_o christ_n have_v a_o body_n from_o the_o earth_n yet_o that_o body_n be_v not_o leave_v unto_o frailty_n but_o be_v govern_v and_o sanctify_a and_o glorify_v by_o the_o beatifical_a vision_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o incorporate_a union_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o by_o this_o come_v the_o difference_n between_o they_o the_o one_o be_v a_o man_n and_o nothing_o else_o but_o from_o the_o earth_n the_o other_o be_v more_o than_o a_o man_n god_n and_o man_n and_o so_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n quality_n 3._o in_o respect_n of_o their_o quality_n the_o three_o difference_n be_v in_o their_o quality_n and_o condition_n which_o be_v note_v in_o this_o word_n he_o be_v a_o lord_n therefore_o adam_n come_v not_o as_o a_o lord_n he_o come_v as_o a_o servant_n he_o be_v to_o serve_v in_o all_o purpose_n he_o come_v to_o till_o the_o garden_n to_o till_o the_o earth_n he_o come_v to_o eat_v and_o drink_v to_o beget_v child_n to_o be_v the_o father_n of_o a_o family_n he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o increase_v and_o multiply_v as_o god_n command_v he_o 1.28_o gen._n 1.28_o to_o replenish_v the_o earth_n these_o although_o they_o be_v fair_a course_n and_o god_n give_v a_o blessing_n unto_o they_o yet_o they_o be_v carnal_a and_o fleshly_a there_o be_v no_o respect_n of_o excellency_n in_o these_o thing_n they_o be_v matter_n rather_o of_o necessity_n for_o the_o present_a solace_n in_o this_o world_n then_o of_o glory_n but_o christ_n come_v not_o for_o this_o purpose_n he_o come_v not_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v but_o his_o meat_n and_o drink_n be_v to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n 34._o john_n 4_o 34._o he_o have_v no_o generation_n all_o his_o generation_n be_v a_o spiritual_a regeneration_n he_o come_v to_o do_v god_n service_n these_o be_v the_o thing_n he_o be_v exercise_v in_o therefore_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n this_o be_v the_o high_a prerogative_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v many_o angel_n that_o come_v from_o heaven_n as_o well_o as_o christ_n but_o they_o come_v not_o as_o lord_n but_o as_o servant_n as_o fellow_n servant_n 22.9_o rev._n 22.9_o as_o in_o rev._n 22._o when_v john_n will_v have_v worship_v the_o angel_n see_v thou_o do_v it_o not_o say_v he_o i_o be_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n 1.14_o heb._n 1.14_o and_o in_o heb._n 1._o they_o be_v minister_a spirit_n that_o serve_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o those_o that_o be_v elect_v and_o choose_v for_o the_o inheritance_n therefore_o they_o come_v not_o down_o as_o lord_n but_o as_o servant_n and_o although_o we_o read_v in_o scripture_n of_o those_o that_o come_v down_o as_o lord_n as_o in_o the_o apparition_n to_o abraham_n gen._n 18._o he_o call_v the_o angel_n lord_n 18.3_o gen._n 18.3_o and_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o lord_n army_n that_o appear_v to_o joshua_n though_o these_o come_v in_o the_o glory_n 5.14_o joshuah_n 5.14_o and_o may_v of_o the_o lord_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o that_o lord_n as_o here_o it_o be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o lord_n that_o come_v from_o heaven_n for_o that_o lord_n be_v but_o one_o lord_n 1.2_o heb._n 1.2_o which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o who_o the_o father_n have_v give_v the_o inheritance_n of_o all_o thing_n heb._n 1.2_o he_o be_v the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o the_o jew_n themselves_o confess_v come_v let_v we_o kill_v he_o this_o be_v the_o heir_n 12.7_o mark_v 12.7_o and_o the_o inheritance_n shall_v be_v we_o he_o then_o be_v the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n adam_n come_v not_o as_o a_o lord_n nor_o yet_o from_o heaven_n but_o one_o only_a part_n of_o he_o his_o soul_n without_o any_o conjunction_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n there_o come_v a_o changeable_a soul_n into_o a_o frail_a body_n but_o christ_n the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n that_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o be_v lord_n of_o hell_n and_o heaven_n invest_v himself_o in_o a_o strange_a and_o wondrous_a manner_n into_o the_o body_n and_o womb_n of_o a_o virgin_n and_o take_v that_o mass_n and_o lump_n of_o blood_n whereof_o his_o bless_a body_n shall_v be_v compact_v and_o unite_v it_o to_o himself_o and_o exercise_v the_o power_n of_o miracle_n and_o of_o gracious_a wonder_n and_o all_o part_n of_o perfection_n in_o that_o nature_n and_o therefore_o he_o have_v exalt_v our_o nature_n high_a above_o the_o angel_n nature_n for_o he_o take_v not_o upon_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o angel_n 2.16_o heb._n 2.16_o but_o he_o take_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n last_o in_o their_o quality_n they_o differ_v that_o as_o the_o first_o man_n come_v from_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v a_o servant_n so_o he_o be_v earthly_a there_o be_v two_o part_n of_o man_n as_o the_o philosopher_n say_v there_o be_v the_o mind_n and_o the_o understanding_n that_o be_v the_o subtle_a and_o divine_a and_o fiery_a part_n of_o man_n whereby_o he_o be_v appropincate_a and_o draw_v near_o unto_o god_n in_o the_o similitude_n of_o his_o image_n there_o be_v another_o and_o that_o be_v the_o gross_a and_o material_a part_n chrysost_n chrysost_n as_o st._n chrysostom_n expound_v it_o that_o this_o earthly_a man_n be_v one_o that_o be_v dull_a and_o gross_a and_o nail_v and_o tie_v to_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v present_a whereas_o the_o other_o 4.18_o 2_o cor._n 4.18_o be_v heavenly_a and_o altogether_o upon_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o see_v for_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v see_v be_v temporal_a but_o they_o that_o be_v not_o see_v be_v eternal_a so_o then_o the_o one_o by_o his_o condition_n be_v still_o look_v downward_o the_o other_o be_v all_o spirit_n and_o full_a of_o vigour_n full_a of_o life_n always_o look_v upward_o still_o unto_o heaven_n his_o conversation_n be_v also_o heavenly_a have_v give_v all_o his_o follower_n power_n to_o have_v their_o conversation_n there_o 3.20_o phil._n 3.20_o phil._n 3._o but_o our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n from_o whence_o we_o look_v for_o the_o lord_n christ_n who_o shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n and_o make_v they_o like_v unto_o his_o glorious_a body_n so_o this_o be_v the_o comparison_n of_o these_o two_o head_n which_o that_o i_o may_v conclude_v this_o point_n we_o must_v observe_v very_o strict_o for_o by_o that_o mean_n we_o may_v be_v both_o able_a to_o keep_v out_o all_o contrary_a
they_o be_v in_o heaven_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o there_o without_o some_o change_n of_o body_n not_o without_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o corrupt_a part_n whereby_o it_o be_v make_v sinful_a and_o though_o the_o saint_n that_o shall_v live_v at_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v translate_v and_o it_o be_v true_a they_o shall_v be_v so_o but_o how_o by_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n omnipotency_n that_o shall_v work_v they_o thorough_o to_o perfection_n and_o shall_v take_v away_o the_o dross_n and_o leave_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v pure_a and_o sit_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n to_o dwell_v in_o and_o make_v his_o residence_n there_o for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o slave_n of_o misery_n shall_v make_v their_o residence_n in_o the_o court_n of_o glory_n because_o of_o the_o corruption_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v leave_v in_o they_o which_o must_v be_v root_v out_o that_o they_o may_v be_v capable_a of_o that_o bless_a condition_n to_o the_o which_o the_o lord_n bring_v we_o amen_n finis_fw-la sermon_n on_o 1_o cor._n 15._o of_o the_o resurrection_n 1_o cor._n 15.51_o behold_v i_o show_v you_o a_o mystery_n we_o shall_v not_o all_o sleep_n but_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v in_o a_o moment_n in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n by_o the_o last_o trump_n there_o be_v almost_o no_o part_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n so_o general_a but_o it_o admit_v of_o some_o particular_a exception_n 1.15_o 1_o tim._n 1.15_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o save_v sinner_n yet_o not_o all_o sinner_n but_o those_o that_o be_v penitent_a and_o convert_v so_o the_o rule_n be_v that_o all_o man_n must_v once_o die_v 9.27_o heb._n 9.27_o and_o that_o all_o man_n that_o be_v dead_a shall_v rise_v again_o and_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o true_a of_o all_o particular_n for_o there_o be_v some_o exception_n against_o this_o truth_n yea_o there_o be_v many_o thousand_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n many_o million_o that_o shall_v neither_o die_v nor_o rise_v again_o yea_o a_o whole_a world_n the_o world_n that_o shall_v stand_v at_o the_o come_n of_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v neither_o die_v nor_o rise_v again_o but_o these_o be_v but_o a_o handful_n in_o respect_n of_o former_a age_n and_o therefore_o some_o particular_a exception_n do_v not_o infringe_v a_o general_a rule_n for_o if_o there_o be_v some_o then_o that_o shall_v not_o taste_v of_o death_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o man_n doubt_n but_o that_o the_o common_a law_n of_o death_n be_v impose_v upon_o all_o man_n and_o every_o man_n must_v suffer_v it_o in_o his_o time_n and_o although_o it_o be_v a_o true_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o all_o flesh_n that_o be_v dead_a shall_v rise_v again_o to_o judgement_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a number_n which_o shall_v be_v exempt_v and_o which_o shall_v be_v translate_v after_o another_o manner_n not_o by_o way_n of_o resurrection_n but_o by_o way_n of_o change_n and_o mutation_n and_o the_o apostle_n call_v this_o a_o great_a mystery_n for_o indeed_o as_o all_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n be_v full_a of_o mystery_n so_o this_o above_o the_o rest_n to_o understand_v what_o kind_n of_o change_n this_o shall_v be_v to_o understand_v how_o they_o that_o live_v at_o christ_n come_n shall_v be_v privilege_v more_o than_o we_o that_o live_v before_o they_o for_o it_o be_v a_o great_a privilege_n for_o a_o man_n never_o to_o go_v to_o his_o grave_n and_o he_o that_o sleep_v least_o in_o the_o dust_n we_o account_v he_o in_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n the_o happy_a we_o esteem_v he_o the_o happy_a man_n that_o stay_v the_o short_a time_n in_o death_n how_o therefore_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v conceive_v it_o be_v mystical_a and_o hide_a from_o our_o sense_n all_o this_o notwithstanding_o the_o apostle_n resolve_v upon_o it_o and_o say_v although_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n to_o we_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o a_o mystery_n to_o he_o for_o it_o be_v reveal_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o he_o and_o he_o reveal_v it_o and_o tell_v it_o again_o unto_o we_o that_o there_o be_v a_o remnant_n of_o man_n that_o shall_v survive_v when_o christ_n shall_v come_v to_o judgement_n which_o shall_v not_o go_v to_o heaven_n by_o that_o common_a path_n that_o we_o go_v they_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o see_v death_n as_o we_o do_v nor_o to_o the_o putrefaction_n and_o filth_n which_o be_v incident_a to_o our_o nature_n but_o they_o shall_v be_v translate_v by_o a_o kind_n of_o change_n which_o shall_v be_v unto_o they_o as_o our_o death_n be_v to_o we_o and_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v a_o resurrection_n as_o our_o body_n have_v they_o shall_v not_o go_v under_o ground_n to_o rise_v again_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v dissolve_v to_o be_v renew_v again_o and_o this_o be_v the_o wondrous_a mystery_n which_o be_v of_o all_o most_o strange_a for_o suppose_v a_o child_n that_o be_v both_o new_a bear_v and_o new_o inter_v as_o there_o shall_v be_v many_o thousand_o that_o shall_v die_v two_o or_o three_o day_n before_o the_o resurrection_n these_o must_v now_o rise_v very_o raw_a out_o of_o their_o grave_n the_o change_n than_o that_o shall_v now_o be_v make_v upon_o their_o body_n that_o be_v so_o new_o inter_v must_v needs_o be_v a_o very_a wonderful_a one_o it_o be_v past_o the_o reason_n of_o man_n to_o conceive_v but_o it_o be_v enough_o that_o it_o rest_v in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o that_o he_o have_v reveal_v it_o to_o his_o apostle_n and_o teacher_n of_o his_o church_n by_o a_o infallible_a determination_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v true_o and_o real_o effect_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o they_o that_o shall_v then_o live_v whatsoever_o we_o think_v and_o deem_v to_o the_o contrary_n so_o now_o the_o apostle_n begin_v partly_o to_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o great_a world_n that_o shall_v be_v when_o christ_n shall_v come_v and_o partly_o to_o prove_v that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v before_o as_o concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o consider_v that_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n the_o lord_n shall_v come_v in_o a_o moment_n and_o he_o shall_v take_v thing_n as_o he_o find_v they_o and_o those_o that_o be_v then_o live_v he_o shall_v make_v his_o own_o hand_n glorious_a upon_o they_o as_o he_o please_v by_o a_o kind_n of_o change_n and_o mutation_n although_o not_o according_a to_o the_o common_a decree_n and_o course_n of_o die_v and_o for_o the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v a_o proof_n of_o that_o he_o have_v say_v before_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v the_o word_n that_o former_o he_o have_v say_v that_o corruption_n shall_v not_o inherit_v incorruption_n nor_o flesh_n and_o blood_n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n now_o for_o that_o a_o man_n may_v thus_o object_n and_o say_v against_o it_o what_o then_o shall_v become_v of_o they_o that_o live_v when_o christ_n come_v to_o judgement_n be_v not_o they_o flesh_n and_o blood_n as_o well_o as_o we_o for_o their_o blood_n shall_v be_v corrupt_v as_o well_o as_o we_o be_v and_o corrupt_a flesh_n as_o well_o as_o we_o their_o flesh_n shall_v be_v taint_v with_o sin_n and_o with_o all_o kind_n of_o transgression_n and_o disobedience_n as_o we_o be_v and_o rather_o worse_a for_o the_o long_o the_o world_n stand_v the_o worse_a it_o grow_v therefore_o if_o flesh_n and_o blood_n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o that_o corrupt_a flesh_n and_o blood_n shall_v not_o come_v into_o incorruption_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o they_o that_o christ_n shall_v find_v at_o his_o come_n the_o apostle_n answer_v that_o nay_o say_v he_o god_n have_v provide_v another_o way_n for_o they_o and_o that_o be_v by_o mutation_n and_o change_n so_o that_o though_o they_o shall_v be_v flesh_n and_o blood_n as_o we_o be_v and_o corrupt_a flesh_n and_o blood_n as_o we_o be_v and_o perhaps_o worse_o corrupt_v than_o we_o because_o the_o last_o time_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v the_o worst_a yet_o the_o lord_n shall_v so_o work_v by_o his_o omnipotent_a power_n as_o that_o their_o corruption_n shall_v be_v refine_v and_o wrought_v out_o they_o shall_v be_v mould_v by_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o by_o that_o fire_n that_o shall_v go_v through_o the_o world_n for_o as_o he_o have_v a_o visible_a fire_n to_o purify_v the_o element_n and_o all_o this_o visible_a mass_n which_o we_o see_v so_o he_o have_v another_o kind_n of_o fire_n a_o spiritual_a fire_n to_o purge_v the_o body_n of_o man_n from_o their_o original_n and_o actual_a transgression_n which_o they_o have_v contract_v the_o power_n of_o god_n shall_v so_o work_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v some_o analogy_n with_o our_o death_n which_o
notwithstanding_o they_o shall_v not_o die_v nor_o be_v put_v into_o their_o grave_n for_o that_o change_n shall_v be_v unto_o they_o instead_o of_o our_o death_n and_o do_v not_o think_v yourselves_o so_o much_o the_o worse_o that_o god_n favour_v you_o the_o less_o or_o that_o he_o favour_v they_o more_o because_o they_o go_v not_o to_o their_o grave_n as_o you_o do_v for_o the_o lord_n make_v you_o by_o patience_n subject_n to_o his_o holy_a will_n he_o give_v you_o that_o patience_n that_o for_o his_o sake_n you_o can_v be_v content_a to_o be_v depose_v to_o lay_v down_o your_o earthly_a tabernacle_n and_o you_o must_v not_o vex_v and_o grieve_v at_o they_o for_o they_o be_v never_o the_o better_a for_o it_o for_o their_o change_n be_v to_o they_o as_o a_o death_n although_o it_o be_v not_o with_o the_o same_o obsequy_n and_o in_o the_o same_o outward_a show_n yet_o in_o effect_n it_o shall_v be_v the_o same_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v do_v to_o dust_n and_o that_o they_o never_o see_v dust_n this_o be_v no_o disparagement_n to_o we_o nor_o no_o great_a comfort_n to_o they_o for_o it_o shall_v be_v all_o one_o in_o effect_n the_o lord_n imbalme_v the_o memory_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o he_o preserve_v their_o dust_n and_o tell_v the_o sand_n of_o their_o dust_n and_o he_o keep_v they_o in_o perpetual_a record_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o he_o pour_v out_o hereafter_o upon_o another_o generation_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o prejudice_n to_o those_o that_o be_v now_o dead_a for_o the_o lord_n go_v down_o with_o those_o that_o sleep_n to_o the_o grave_n he_o descend_v with_o they_o and_o preserve_v they_o and_o keep_v they_o he_o number_v their_o hair_n he_o number_v the_o member_n and_o part_n of_o their_o body_n and_o this_o be_v that_o mystery_n which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o here_o behold_v i_o show_v you_o a_o mystery_n it_o be_v a_o great_a mystery_n that_o any_o man_n shall_v live_v and_o not_o see_v death_n yet_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v million_o of_o man_n that_o shall_v live_v and_o yet_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o death_n many_o that_o shall_v have_v a_o mortal_a and_o corrupt_v and_o sinful_a life_n as_o we_o have_v and_o yet_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v any_o death_n it_o be_v a_o great_a mystery_n that_o all_o the_o saint_n shall_v not_o come_v to_o life_n eternal_a by_o the_o same_o mean_n that_o be_v by_o way_n of_o putrefaction_n and_o of_o resurrection_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v million_o that_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o life_n that_o way_n but_o by_o another_o way_n of_o change_n and_o mutation_n behold_v i_o tell_v you_o a_o mystery_n we_o shall_v not_o all_o die_v but_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o word_n mean_n division_n into_o 1_o the_o time_n 2_o the_o manner_n and_o mean_n now_o the_o apostle_n express_v and_o explain_v himself_o far_a by_o tell_v the_o cause_n and_o the_o mean_n how_o this_o shall_v be_v do_v for_o he_o say_v this_o shall_v be_v do_v as_o concern_v the_o time_n immediate_o in_o a_o instant_n in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n and_o as_o concern_v the_o manner_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o it_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o last_o trump_n the_o trump_n that_o shall_v blow_v and_o so_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v this_o the_o lord_n shall_v sound_v forth_o his_o trumpet_n which_o shall_v have_v a_o power_n to_o change_v the_o body_n that_o as_o at_o the_o first_o he_o speak_v the_o word_n let_v this_o be_v make_v 1._o gen._n 1._o and_o it_o be_v make_v let_v there_o be_v light_n and_o there_o be_v light_a so_o there_o shall_v be_v another_o power_n in_o the_o voice_n for_o the_o renew_n and_o re-creating_a of_o thing_n as_o there_o be_v a_o power_n in_o the_o voice_n then_o to_o create_v and_o make_v the_o world_n so_o there_o shall_v in_o the_o re-creating_a and_o re_fw-mi make_v of_o the_o world_n that_o shall_v make_v a_o change_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o as_o in_o the_o beginning_n thing_n that_o be_v dark_a before_o be_v make_v light_n let_v there_o be_v light_n and_o there_o be_v light_a of_o that_o which_o be_v dark_a before_o and_o that_o which_o be_v confuse_v before_o be_v make_v orderly_o and_o distinct_a which_o be_v the_o great_a extremity_n that_o can_v be_v light_n and_o darkness_n order_n and_o confusion_n so_o likewise_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o mighty_a voice_n of_o god_n in_o that_o sound_a silver_n trumpet_n that_o shall_v then_o blow_v to_o change_v the_o body_n of_o man_n from_o dark_a to_o light_v some_o body_n and_o shall_v change_v their_o thought_n from_o confusion_n and_o disorder_n to_o be_v regular_a and_o orderly_o the_o trumpet_n be_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n the_o operation_n of_o the_o almighty_a which_o as_o it_o wrought_v a_o strange_a change_n in_o the_o creation_n so_o it_o shall_v work_v a_o stranger_n in_o the_o recreation_n and_o renovation_n of_o the_o world_n these_o be_v the_o part_n and_o parcel_n of_o the_o text._n now_o to_o proceed_v in_o order_n as_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o give_v assistance_n the_o first_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o mystery_n which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o have_v be_v draw_v to_o diverse_a reading_n and_o exposition_n of_o this_o text._n for_o they_o can_v not_o see_v how_o it_o shall_v be_v true_a that_o the_o apostle_n say_v all_o shall_v be_v change_v because_o they_o think_v it_o only_o belong_v to_o the_o godly_a but_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o ungodly_a shall_v be_v change_v too_o for_o their_o body_n that_o be_v now_o corrupt_a shall_v be_v then_o uncorrupt_a but_o how_o to_o sustain_v misery_n and_o torment_n that_o they_o have_v better_a not_o to_o be_v than_o to_o be_v in_o such_o a_o case_n all_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o so_o work_v upon_o they_o to_z dead_z they_o not_o to_o consume_v they_o but_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o consist_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o torment_n now_o the_o least_o care_n and_o trouble_v in_o the_o world_n kill_v a_o man_n heart_n and_o work_v he_o off_o but_o then_o god_n shall_v so_o change_v the_o body_n of_o the_o reprobate_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o endure_v whatsoever_o torment_n shall_v be_v lay_v upon_o they_o but_o because_o those_o man_n understand_v not_o this_o they_o think_v the_o change_n be_v to_o be_v take_v in_o a_o good_a sense_n to_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o godly_a therefore_o they_o read_v it_o two_o several_a way_n differ_v from_o we_o for_o our_o read_n be_v this_o which_o be_v so_o in_o the_o original_a according_a to_o the_o greek_a copy_n we_o shall_v not_o all_o die_v but_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v and_o so_o it_o agree_v proper_o with_o that_o which_o go_v before_o for_o he_o give_v a_o answer_n to_o a_o question_n that_o may_v be_v make_v why_o do_v you_o say_v that_o corruption_n shall_v not_o enter_v into_o incorruption_n nor_o flesh_n and_o blood_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n shall_v not_o they_o be_v corrupt_a flesh_n that_o shall_v live_v at_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n to_o judgement_n to_o this_o the_o apostle_n say_v indeed_o they_o shall_v not_o die_v but_o instead_o of_o that_o death_n they_o shall_v have_v a_o change_n so_o that_o this_o be_v a_o inference_n upon_o the_o former_a and_o a_o answer_n for_o the_o removal_n of_o a_o objection_n now_o as_o i_o say_v diverse_a part_n of_o the_o church_n read_v it_o two_o other_o way_n the_o first_o be_v this_o we_o shall_v all_o certain_o die_v but_o we_o shall_v not_o all_o be_v change_v for_o they_o be_v careful_a still_o to_o appropriate_v and_o bring_v the_o change_n unto_o god_n people_n and_o inheritance_n as_o though_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o wicked_a another_o read_n be_v this_o we_o shall_v all_o rise_v again_o but_o we_o shall_v not_o all_o be_v change_v so_o that_o still_o they_o make_v the_o negative_a upon_o the_o change_n because_o they_o understand_v not_o how_o this_o thing_n may_v be_v conceive_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a which_o be_v the_o change_n of_o the_o body_n now_o indeed_o in_o their_o several_a sense_n they_o be_v all_o true_a for_o the_o first_o that_o say_v we_o shall_v not_o all_o sleep_n it_o be_v true_a of_o the_o common_a mass_n of_o mankind_n but_o not_o of_o every_o particular_a body_n and_o of_o every_o particular_a age_n for_o i_o tell_v you_o before_o that_o the_o lord_n shall_v exempt_v a_o whole_a world_n from_o the_o common_a death_n which_o we_o suffer_v therefore_o it_o be_v not_o true_a in_o the_o particular_n that_o we_o shall_v all_o sle●pe_n for_o there_o shall_v be_v many_o thousand_o of_o man_n
i_o look_v for_o my_o change_n as_o well_o as_o another_o man_n as_o job_n 14.1_o job_n 14.1_o say_v all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n will_v i_o look_v for_o my_o change_n so_o the_o apostle_n say_v every_o man_n must_v look_v for_o this_o that_o he_o may_v be_v prepare_v for_o perhaps_o i_o may_v be_v the_o last_o man_n perhaps_o the_o trumpet_n may_v sound_v to_o night_n before_o to_o morrow_n for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n know_v when_o the_o day_n of_o doom_n shall_v be_v it_o be_v reserve_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o god_n alone_o and_o we_o be_v always_o to_o look_v for_o his_o come_n because_o we_o know_v not_o when_o he_o will_v come_v whether_o at_o midnight_n 13.5_o mark_v 13.5_o or_o at_o the_o dawn_n of_o the_o day_n therefore_o we_o shall_v always_o be_v ready_a with_o our_o lamp_n light_v and_o our_o loin_n gird_v that_o we_o may_v be_v prepare_v when_o the_o bridegroom_n come_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n 25._o mat._n 25._o thus_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o shall_v be_v change_v he_o speak_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v be_v one_o of_o they_o although_o long_o since_o he_o be_v inter_v in_o the_o earth_n yet_o because_o he_o know_v not_o his_o own_o dissolution_n or_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o world_n when_o it_o shall_v be_v therefore_o he_o have_v it_o in_o perpetual_a memory_n we_o shall_v not_o all_o sleep_n but_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v and_o what_o be_v this_o change_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d how_o death_n be_v call_v a_o sleep_n i_o have_v tell_v you_o heretofore_o and_o i_o will_v not_o repeat_v it_o now_o we_o shall_v be_v change_v that_o be_v in_o quality_n for_o so_o the_o word_n signify_v even_o a_o alter_n of_o the_o quality_n not_o a_o change_n of_o the_o substance_n for_o the_o same_o body_n that_o suffer_v death_n for_o sin_n the_o same_o body_n shall_v be_v glorify_v by_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n as_o sin_n come_v upon_o it_o to_o do_v it_o to_o death_n so_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n shall_v overflow_v it_o to_o bring_v it_o to_o life_n for_o where_o sin_n have_v abound_v grace_n shall_v supper_n abound_v 14.20_o rom._n 14.20_o if_o therefore_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n be_v able_a to_o mortify_v all_o to_o their_o grave_n much_o more_o shall_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n be_v able_a to_o quicken_v all_o his_o to_o life_n everlasting_a therefore_o i_o say_v we_o shall_v be_v change_v meaning_n as_o concern_v the_o quality_n not_o concern_v the_o substance_n for_o that_o body_n which_o be_v once_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v never_o cease_v to_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o those_o part_n that_o feel_v misery_n by_o adam_n sin_n they_o shall_v feel_v sweetness_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o bounty_n that_o shall_v be_v reveal_v through_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v this_o change_n how_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v and_o in_o what_o degree_n i_o have_v partly_o speak_v of_o it_o before_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v it_o unto_o we_o when_o he_o say_v it_o be_v sow_v in_o weakness_n it_o be_v raise_v in_o strength_n it_o be_v sow_o in_o corruption_n it_o be_v raise_v in_o incorruption_n it_o be_v sow_v a_o mortal_a or_o natural_a body_n but_o it_o rise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n it_o be_v sow_o in_o dishonour_n it_o rise_v again_o in_o honour_n these_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o change_n which_o have_v heretofore_o stand_v upon_o i_o will_v not_o now_o repeat_v the_o change_n therefore_o shall_v be_v in_o those_o four_o noble_a quality_n which_o the_o apostle_n former_o describe_v unto_o we_o and_o this_o change_n shall_v be_v wrought_v by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n upon_o a_o matter_n that_o we_o will_v think_v can_v not_o endure_v such_o a_o strange_a operation_n as_o that_o be_v but_o the_o lord_n be_v able_a to_o command_v light_a to_o come_v out_o of_o darkness_n and_o have_v wrought_v by_o mean_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n the_o great_a impression_n of_o his_o power_n he_o therefore_o be_v able_a to_o work_v upon_o this_o weak_a body_n and_o to_o set_v upon_o it_o the_o stamp_n of_o incorruption_n of_o glory_n of_o immortality_n and_o of_o strength_n he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o and_o his_o power_n will_v do_v it_o according_a to_o his_o gracious_a promise_n we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v all_o we_o say_v the_o apostle_n chief_o this_o change_n shall_v be_v upon_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o restrain_v to_o they_o but_o that_o in_o part_n it_o shall_v extend_v to_o all_o man_n i_o tell_v you_o in_o the_o open_n of_o the_o text_n that_o the_o reprobate_n shall_v have_v their_o part_n in_o this_o change_n for_o their_o body_n shall_v be_v make_v uncorrupt_a and_o immortal_a but_o not_o to_o glory_n and_o beauty_n not_o to_o comfort_v and_o consolation_n as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v but_o to_o extremity_n and_o misery_n like_a as_o a_o brick_n which_o lie_v in_o the_o fire_n continual_o and_o be_v always_o burn_a and_o yet_o never_o consume_v or_o as_o that_o axbestam_fw-la which_o the_o philosopher_n speak_v of_o which_o be_v not_o consume_v but_o be_v able_a continual_o to_o abide_v the_o fire_n so_o the_o body_n of_o those_o that_o do_v ●ot_n fear_v the_o lord_n and_o worship_v he_o the_o earthly_a tabernacle_n of_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v durable_a of_o pain_n but_o not_o capable_a of_o honour_n and_o glory_n they_o shall_v be_v make_v capable_a of_o no_o comfort_n and_o yet_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v spoil_v and_o consume_v by_o any_o pain_n and_o sorrow_n that_o shall_v lie_v upon_o they_o this_o change_n therefore_o use_v we_o must_v desire_v the_o lord_n that_o it_o may_v be_v for_o the_o better_a and_o not_o for_o the_o worse_o that_o see_v there_o shall_v and_o must_v be_v a_o change_n of_o these_o body_n that_o it_o will_v please_v the_o lord_n to_o change_v we_o from_o these_o frailty_n and_o misery_n that_o we_o now_o live_v in_o to_o the_o bless_a joy_n and_o hope_n which_o he_o have_v call_v his_o child_n unto_o and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v capable_a of_o this_o we_o must_v desire_v god_n to_o make_v a_o change_n of_o we_o in_o this_o life_n for_o the_o lord_n shall_v change_v all_o thing_n he_o be_v the_o changer_n of_o we_o he_o be_v unchangeable_a himself_o all_o thing_n else_o he_o shall_v change_v 102._o psal_n 102._o thou_o shall_v change_v the_o heaven_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v change_v but_o thou_o be_v the_o same_o and_o thy_o year_n never_o fail_v so_o that_o the_o lord_n be_v only_o immutable_a and_o the_o same_o for_o ever_o it_o be_v he_o that_o work_v the_o change_n upon_o all_o thing_n we_o see_v in_o the_o common_a course_n of_o our_o life_n what_o change_v he_o work_v in_o our_o age_n he_o change_v childhood_n to_o youth_n and_o that_o to_o manhood_n and_o thence_o to_o old_a age_n a_o strange_a and_o various_a change_n in_o our_o climate_n there_o be_v winter_n and_o summer_n there_o be_v day_n and_o night_n there_o be_v stormy_a and_o fair_a weather_n wondrous_a change_n be_v also_o in_o matter_n politic_a and_o civil_a he_o turn_v war_n into_o peace_n he_o change_v peace_n into_o war_n it_o be_v he_o that_o suffer_v nation_n to_o rise_v against_o nation_n all_o the_o change_n in_o the_o world_n come_v from_o god_n so_o we_o must_v imagine_v in_o our_o body_n that_o shall_v be_v change_v that_o all_o shall_v be_v wrought_v by_o his_o own_o hand_n use_v this_o must_v teach_v we_o first_o to_o desire_n god_n to_o make_v a_o happy_a change_n in_o our_o soul_n before_o he_o make_v the_o change_n in_o our_o body_n for_o there_o can_v never_o be_v a_o comfortable_a change_n in_o any_o man_n body_n except_o first_o there_o be_v a_o precedent_n and_o a_o precedent_n change_v in_o the_o soul_n for_o except_v the_o soul_n be_v change_v from_o worse_a to_o better_o from_o wickedness_n to_o holiness_n of_o life_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o look_v for_o a_o good_a change_n of_o his_o body_n where_o there_o be_v no_o precedent_n change_v in_o his_o soul_n therefore_o while_o we_o be_v in_o this_o life_n we_o be_v to_o look_v for_o this_o change_n if_o the_o lord_n change_v thy_o soul_n from_o sinfulness_n to_o holiness_n thou_o may_v be_v sure_a thy_o body_n also_o shall_v be_v change_v to_o happiness_n and_o immortality_n and_o glory_n if_o thy_o soul_n be_v not_o change_v but_o thou_o be_v worse_o and_o worse_o very_o thou_o shall_v have_v a_o change_n in_o the_o resurrection_n but_o it_o shall_v be_v unto_o dismalnesse_n to_o fearfulness_n and_o to_o distraction_n so_o that_o a_o man_n have_v better_a never_o have_v be_v bear_v than_o to_o be_v
by_o paginall_n by_o leaf_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o holy_a scripture_n contain_v in_o so_o many_o book_n but_o the_o trumpet_n at_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v in_o pagina_fw-la but_o in_o praesentia_fw-la in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o son_n with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n himself_o according_a as_o it_o be_v say_v joh._n 5._o 5.25_o joh._n 5.25_o there_o be_v many_o that_o sleep_n in_o their_o grave_n and_o monument_n that_o shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v rise_v again_o thus_o the_o father_n seem_v to_o incline_v to_o that_o opinion_n that_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o trumpet_n shall_v be_v metaphorical_a that_o it_o be_v a_o allusion_n and_o a_o figurative_a speech_n but_o howsoever_o this_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o sensible_a voice_n which_o shall_v be_v hear_v that_o as_o st._n jerom_n jerome_n jerome_n say_v they_o shall_v hear_v with_o their_o ear_n and_o go_v along_o with_o their_o foot_n unto_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o judgement_n the_o best_a therefore_o that_o we_o can_v say_v and_o conclude_v of_o it_o be_v this_o according_a as_o we_o see_v but_o in_o part_n 9_o 1_o cor._n 13_o 9_o we_o understand_v but_o in_o part_n in_o a_o dark_a riddle_n while_o we_o live_v in_o this_o world_n the_o lord_n shall_v then_o create_v a_o voice_n in_o the_o air_n a_o audible_a voice_n in_o the_o air_n which_o shall_v run_v through_o all_o part_n and_o passage_n of_o the_o world_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o mighty_a and_o so_o powerful_a as_o that_o the_o dead_a body_n in_o the_o grave_n shall_v hear_v it_o every_o thing_n hear_v when_o god_n speak_v the_o water_n hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n the_o wind_n hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n the_o devil_n hear_v his_o voice_n the_o rock_n and_o stone_n hear_v he_o so_o there_o be_v a_o obedientiall_a power_n in_o every_o thing_n create_v and_o it_o can_v but_o hear_v when_o god_n speak_v this_o be_v that_o trumpet_n that_o be_v a_o voice_n that_o shall_v be_v modulate_a and_o frame_v whether_o it_o shall_v be_v to_o descant_v as_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a or_o to_o a_o plain_a tune_n but_o howsoever_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o voice_n and_o a_o voice_n like_o the_o sound_n of_o a_o trumpet_n which_o god_n shall_v frame_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o air_n trumpet_n who_o shall_v blow_v this_o trumpet_n but_o who_o shall_v blow_v this_o trumpet_n who_o shall_v sound_v it_o here_o the_o curiosity_n of_o man_n must_v lay_v the_o hand_n up_o on_o the_o mouth_n and_o surcease_v it_o be_v a_o damnable_a thing_n for_o a_o man_n to_o inquire_v into_o that_o which_o god_n have_v not_o reveil_v some_o of_o the_o father_n have_v be_v inch_v and_o question_v about_o this_o point_n who_o it_o shall_v be_v but_o it_o be_v certain_a it_o shall_v be_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o archangel_n although_o the_o voice_n be_v proper_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o the_o voice_n shall_v come_v from_o he_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o the_o voice_n shall_v be_v the_o immediate_a voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o shall_v blow_v in_o the_o air_n but_o as_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o crier_n or_o herald_n when_o the_o king_n come_v to_o a_o place_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o king_n because_o he_o cry_v and_o proclaim_v not_o his_o own_o matter_n but_o the_o king_n so_o the_o angel_n that_o shall_v be_v employ_v in_o this_o business_n he_o be_v say_v to_o utter_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n and_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n from_o who_o that_o which_o he_o utter_v receive_v all_o the_o efficacy_n and_o power_n and_o though_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o angel_n and_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o a_o angel_n yet_o it_o shall_v be_v by_o the_o ordinance_n and_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o shall_v make_v this_o voice_n therefore_o the_o father_n resolve_v upon_o two_o which_o they_o think_v shall_v sound_v the_o trumpet_n michael_n or_o gabriel_n they_o think_v michael_n shall_v sound_v it_o because_o he_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o angel_n and_o in_o the_o revelation_n michael_n &_o his_o angel_n 12.7_o rev._n 12.7_o fight_v against_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n but_o this_o be_v unlikely_a for_o michael_n there_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o fight_v with_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n upon_o the_o cross_n but_o i_o rather_o incline_v to_o the_o other_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v gabriel_n the_o archangel_n who_o be_v he_o only_a that_o bring_v the_o news_n of_o christ_n first_o come_v in_o luke_n 1._o 1._o luke_n 1._o as_o he_o be_v use_v by_o god_n to_o bring_v tiding_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n in_o his_o first_o come_v so_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v employ_v by_o the_o same_o majesty_n again_o to_o bring_v news_n of_o the_o last_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judgement_n concern_v these_o thing_n i_o will_v not_o be_v too_o inquisitive_a neither_o will_v i_o have_v you_o to_o be_v too_o curious_a for_o a_o angel_n or_o a_o archangel_n it_o must_v be_v for_o the_o word_n be_v so_o trump_n 2_o part._n why_o call_v the_o last_o trump_n i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o next_o thing_n why_o be_v it_o call_v the_o last_o trump_n for_o if_o he_o call_v it_o the_o last_o trump_n it_o have_v reference_n to_o some_o other_o that_o be_v before_o it_o and_o so_o it_o be_v true_a for_o those_o that_o be_v before_o be_v figure_n of_o this_o last_o trump_n those_o seven_o kind_n of_o trumpet_n 9_o theoph._n oecumenius_n rev._n 8._o &_o 9_o and_o especial_o as_o theophilact_fw-mi and_o oecumenius_n observe_v st_n paul_n have_v reference_n to_o rev._n 8._o there_o be_v seven_o trumpet_n and_o they_o all_o sound_v and_o present_o there_o come_v vial_n of_o wrath_n upon_o the_o world_n present_o upon_o the_o sound_n of_o those_o trumpet_n so_o st._n paul_n tell_v we_o that_o there_o shall_v come_v trumpet_n between_o the_o time_n that_o he_o write_v and_o speak_v these_o thing_n and_o between_o the_o last_o trump_n that_o shall_v sound_v there_o shall_v be_v other_o trumpet_n than_o this_o that_o be_v those_o seven_o before_o speak_v of_o which_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n the_o lord_n utter_v himself_o by_o express_v his_o will_n in_o they_o and_o also_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o christian_a empire_n and_o indeed_o in_o the_o time_n of_o all_o christian_a king_n these_o trumpet_n have_v blow_v and_o indeed_o these_o silver_n trumpet_n blow_v daily_o if_o we_o can_v understand_v what_o be_v the_o right_a meaning_n of_o they_o and_o what_o the_o news_n of_o they_o be_v and_o if_o there_o do_v not_o one_o of_o these_o trumpet_n blow_v now_o a_o man_n can_v tell_v what_o to_o determine_v when_o there_o be_v such_o common_a combustion_n in_o the_o world_n when_o there_o be_v such_o war_n and_o rumour_n of_o war_n and_o such_o rise_n of_o one_o prince_n against_o another_o when_o there_o be_v such_o common_a effusion_n of_o christian_n blood_n certain_o this_o be_v a_o rare_a shrill_a trumpet_n which_o shall_v be_v wise_o by_o the_o cautelous_a and_o diligent_a hear_n of_o every_o christian_n soldier_n observe_v to_o prepare_v they_o for_o the_o battle_n to_o prepare_v they_o for_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n because_o it_o can_v be_v long_o before_o the_o last_o trump_n blow_v these_o trumpet_n indeed_o go_v before_o but_o they_o be_v sign_n that_o the_o last_o trump_n be_v come_v after_o and_o perhaps_o it_o shall_v come_v at_o the_o heel_n and_o overtake_v the_o former_a before_o we_o be_v aware_a aug._n aug._n for_o as_o st._n austin_n say_v well_o the_o trumpet_n use_v not_o to_o sound_v at_o midnight_n but_o in_o the_o morning_n and_o at_o the_o evening_n so_o say_v he_o the_o lord_n trumpet_n sound_v in_o the_o morning_n when_o he_o give_v the_o law_n at_o the_o promulgation_n of_o the_o law_n at_o the_o build_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n at_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o temple_n it_o sound_v in_o the_o morning_n of_o the_o world_n and_o now_o it_o sound_v at_o the_o evening_n at_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o world_n it_o begin_v now_o to_o sound_n if_o man_n will_v open_v their_o ear_n to_o entertain_v it_o but_o for_o the_o other_o trumpet_n say_v he_o it_o may_v well_o be_v that_o the_o last_o trump_n of_o all_o shall_v sound_v at_o midnight_n that_o when_o man_n be_v quiet_a and_o secure_a and_o give_v themselves_o to_o profound_a sleep_n that_o then_o the_o lord_n may_v take_v they_o nap_v that_o as_o they_o
the_o stroke_n of_o death_n because_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v so_o for_o this_o corruptible_fw-fr must_v put_v on_o incorruption_n and_o this_o mortal_a must_v put_v on_o immortality_n and_o to_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o glory_n that_o shall_v be_v it_o can_v fail_v but_o it_o must_v needs_o come_v so_o to_o pass_v as_o the_o lord_n have_v promise_v oportet_fw-la it_o must_v be_v so_o there_o be_v certain_a bond_n that_o have_v pass_v from_o god_n to_o man_n by_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o almighty_a that_o bind_v he_o to_o it_o for_o the_o word_n of_o a_o king_n be_v a_o king_n to_o a_o man_n as_o demosthenes_n say_v demost_a demost_a therefore_o god_n have_v bind_v himself_o unto_o we_o by_o his_o word_n and_o by_o the_o promise_n he_o have_v make_v and_o likewise_o we_o be_v again_o bind_v by_o the_o necessity_n of_o congruity_n by_o the_o necessity_n of_o fitness_n that_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v so_o for_o it_o be_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n and_o of_o our_o corruption_n that_o we_o have_v contract_v thence_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o that_o bless_a incorruption_n till_o we_o have_v put_v off_o this_o corruption_n which_o we_o have_v contract_v there_o be_v no_o meddle_v for_o a_o sound_a man_n to_o come_v to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o pest-house_n nor_o there_o be_v no_o converse_v for_o a_o man_n that_o be_v well_o in_o his_o wit_n with_o they_o that_o be_v in_o bedlam_n there_o be_v no_o mingle_v of_o sheep_n and_o goat_n together_o there_o be_v no_o blending_a of_o light_n and_o darkness_n of_o christ_n and_o beliall_a there_o can_v be_v no_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n between_o corruption_n and_o incorruption_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o corrupt_a body_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o entertain_v and_o receive_v that_o incorruptible_a crown_n of_o heaven_n it_o will_v burst_v he_o in_o his_o feeble_a ability_n as_o be_v say_v of_o semele_n that_o when_o jupiter_n appear_v unto_o ●●r_n in_o his_o full_a glory_n she_o be_v exhaust_v by_o mean_n of_o his_o majesty_n she_o expire_v and_o lose_v her_o life_n so_o it_o be_v true_a and_o certain_a this_o weak_a vessel_n can_v endure_v heaven_n this_o corrupt_a body_n can_v abide_v incorruption_n no_o more_o than_o gunpowder_n can_v endure_v the_o approach_n of_o fire_n for_o it_o will_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o it_o therefore_o the_o lord_n prepare_v a_o habitation_n and_o tabernacle_n for_o it_o in_o the_o earth_n that_o by_o the_o earth_n he_o may_v bring_v it_o to_o be_v capacious_a of_o the_o glory_n they_o shall_v receive_v therefore_o there_o be_v this_o necessity_n that_o the_o apostle_n say_v it_o must_v be_v thus_o and_o this_o necessity_n be_v in_o three_o respect_n first_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o soul_n when_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n the_o soul_n be_v a_o part_n of_o a_o man_n and_o the_o body_n be_v a_o part_n of_o a_o man_n as_o well_o as_o the_o soul_n although_o it_o be_v not_o so_o great_a and_o so_o excellent_a a_o part_n as_o that_o but_o see_v that_o god_n have_v appoint_v that_o a_o body_n and_o a_o soul_n shall_v always_o make_v a_o man_n we_o can_v say_v therefore_o that_o the_o body_n be_v a_o man_n or_o that_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o man_n but_o only_o by_o way_n of_o eminency_n but_o we_o must_v needs_o take_v the_o soul_n as_o long_o as_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n to_o be_v a_o thing_n imperfect_a for_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o bless_v as_o it_o shall_v be_v when_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v reunite_v unto_o it_o it_o be_v bless_v as_o much_o intensive_o but_o not_o extensive_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o society_n &_o company_n with_o the_o body_n &_o with_o the_o glory_n and_o beauty_n and_o that_o joy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o shall_v be_v extend_v every_o where_o as_o well_o to_o the_o body_n as_o to_o the_o soul_n this_o the_o soul_n want_v and_o therefore_o they_o lie_v continual_o linger_a &_o thirst_v in_o expectation_n 6.10_o apoc._n 6.10_o how_o long_a lord_n holy_a and_o true_a they_o desire_v to_o be_v restore_v to_o their_o body_n they_o be_v naked_a now_o the_o sword_n be_v out_o of_o his_o scabbard_n now_o the_o lord_n have_v draw_v they_o asunder_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v both_o in_o ●●e_z hand_n of_o god_n but_o then_o the_o lord_n will_v again_o return_v the_o sword_n into_o his_o scabbard_n when_o he_o have_v cleanse_v &_o polish_v it_o that_o it_o shall_v never_o afterward_o be_v separate_v in_o this_o regard_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o corruption_n must_v put_v on_o incorruption_n for_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n be_v make_v uncorruptible_a and_o immortal_a but_o the_o body_n be_v make_v both_o corruptible_a and_o mortal_a therefore_o that_o the_o one_o may_v fit_v the_o other_o the_o lord_n must_v make_v it_o by_o a_o strange_a &_o wondrous_a change_n he_o must_v make_v this_o corruption_n put_v on_o incorruption_n that_o be_v he_o shall_v so_o mould_v the_o body_n by_o lie_v in_o the_o earth_n that_o he_o shall_v make_v it_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o hand_n he_o shall_v make_v it_o capable_a of_o that_o great_a incorruption_n which_o he_o shall_v give_v it_o when_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n shall_v meet_v together_o in_o one_o the_o second_o reason_n of_o this_o necessity_n be_v this_o because_o the_o good_a god_n have_v ordain_v in_o justice_n to_o perform_v all_o thing_n and_o that_o according_a to_o that_o which_o a_o man_n have_v do_v in_o this_o flesh_n 5.10_o 2_o cor._n 5.10_o for_o we_o mst_o receive_v according_a to_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o have_v do_v in_o this_o flesh_n whether_o they_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n as_o the_o holy_a apostle_n say_v therefore_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v this_o corrupt_a body_n which_o have_v suffer_v pain_n here_o on_o earth_n this_o body_n which_o have_v suffer_v for_o god_n cause_n this_o body_n which_o have_v suffer_v death_n this_o body_n which_o have_v endure_v the_o flame_n and_o persecution_n this_o body_n which_o have_v suffer_v hunger_n and_o thirst_n and_o nakedness_n this_o body_n that_o have_v suffer_v infamy_n and_o ignominy_n revile_v and_o opprobry_n as_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v for_o our_o sake_n this_o body_n which_o have_v be_v so_o bring_v under_o and_o make_v as_o it_o be_v a_o laugh_a stock_n to_o the_o world_n which_o have_v be_v make_v a_o refuge_n of_o scorn_n this_o body_n which_o bear_v the_o print_n &_o mark_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n about_o with_o it_o 6.17_o gal._n 6.17_o this_o body_n which_o have_v be_v in_o martyrdom_n so_o ignominious_a to_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n though_o it_o have_v be_v noble_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n this_o body_n that_o have_v bear_v all_o the_o brunt_n and_o toil_n &_o labour_n in_o affliction_n this_o body_n must_v be_v glorify_v again_o for_o that_o it_o stand_v with_o god_n justice_n that_o every_o man_n shall_v receive_v according_a as_o he_o have_v do_v in_o this_o flesh_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o this_o corruption_n must_v put_v on_o incorruption_n and_o this_o mortal_a must_v put_v on_o immortality_n this_o very_a body_n that_o have_v suffer_v must_v be_v honour_v that_o as_o it_o have_v suffer_v many_o evil_a thing_n for_o god_n cause_n so_o it_o may_v receive_v many_o good_a thing_n for_o its_o own_o cause_n &_o for_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n which_o shall_v be_v reveal_v upon_o it_o and_o last_o it_o be_v necessary_a it_o shall_v be_v thus_o oportet_fw-la it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o the_o body_n must_v go_v to_o incorruption_n aquin._n aquin._n by_o the_o way_n of_o corruption_n as_o aquinas_n well_o note_v because_o of_o the_o conformity_n of_o the_o member_n to_o the_o head_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n go_v this_o way_n therefore_o we_o that_o be_v his_o servant_n must_v not_o look_v to_o be_v above_o our_o master_n 6.40_o luke_n 6.40_o it_o be_v enough_o that_o the_o servant_n be_v equal_a to_o his_o master_n christ_n be_v our_o head_n he_o be_v our_o master_n &_o he_o can_v not_o come_v to_o immortality_n but_o first_o he_o die_v he_o be_v mortal_a before_o he_o be_v immortal_a and_o though_o he_o be_v not_o corruptible_a although_o there_o be_v no_o change_n in_o his_o body_n to_o corruption_n yet_o he_o be_v mortal_a there_o be_v a_o change_n in_o the_o colour_n there_o be_v a_o change_n in_o his_o strength_n and_o life_n these_o thing_n be_v in_o he_o for_o he_o be_v dead_a &_o these_o thing_n can_v consist_v but_o in_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a so_o much_o as_o he_o be_v corruptible_a he_o have_v it_o for_o our_o sake_n he_o be_v mortal_a he_o
be_v dead_a and_o bury_v and_o he_o testify_v his_o mortality_n three_o day_n together_o by_o lie_v in_o the_o grave_n therefore_o as_o christ_n go_v this_o way_n and_o can_v not_o go_v to_o heaven_n until_o he_o have_v taste_v of_o death_n first_o he_o must_v suffer_v and_o so_o enter_v into_o glory_n it_o follow_v therefore_o 24.26_o luke_n 24.26_o that_o all_o his_o member_n must_v second_v he_o and_o subscribe_v to_o that_o course_n which_o their_o lord_n and_o head_n go_v and_o be_v content_a to_o be_v like_a unto_o he_o it_o must_v be_v with_o we_o as_o it_o be_v with_o he_o therefore_o this_o corruption_n must_v put_v on_o incorruption_n that_o be_v we_o can_v come_v to_o that_o glory_n but_o by_o die_v first_o we_o must_v die_v to_o live_v first_o we_o must_v be_v in_o our_o grave_n in_o stink_n and_o filthiness_n that_o we_o may_v be_v raise_v to_o beauty_n and_o strength_n and_o perfection_n according_a to_o the_o glorious_a promise_n which_o god_n have_v make_v in_o christ_n now_o the_o next_o thing_n to_o be_v observe_v be_v the_o triumph_n of_o the_o church_n when_o this_o be_v do_v when_o this_o corruption_n have_v put_v on_o incorruption_n and_o this_o mortal_a have_v put_v on_o immortality_n when_o this_o bless_a garment_n be_v once_o fit_v when_o this_o vestment_n shall_v be_v once_o apply_v unto_o these_o body_n as_o never_o to_o be_v put_v off_o again_o then_o shall_v be_v fulfil_v this_o say_n this_o garment_n of_o incorruption_n and_o immortality_n that_o be_v this_o garment_n of_o glory_n and_o beauty_n wherein_o god_n shall_v invest_v his_o saint_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v like_o these_o garment_n of_o we_o that_o be_v put_v upon_o our_o outside_n which_o cover_v only_o our_o outward_a part_n they_o touch_v not_o our_o entrail_n they_o come_v not_o near_o the_o heart_n but_o this_o bless_a garment_n of_o incorruption_n it_o shall_v run_v through_o all_o the_o vein_n of_o man_n it_o shall_v possess_v he_o every_o where_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o life_n be_v in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n in_o every_o part_n there_o be_v life_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o rest_n it_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o health_n be_v it_o be_v the_o breath_n of_o heaven_n which_o run_v through_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n if_o one_o part_n or_o member_n be_v sick_a all_o the_o rest_n be_v so_o too_o for_o company_n it_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o every_o part_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n the_o soul_n be_v in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n it_o be_v as_o well_o in_o the_o little_a finger_n as_o in_o the_o brain_n of_o a_o man_n and_o after_o this_o kind_n shall_v this_o garment_n be_v put_v on_o not_o as_o our_o clothes_n which_o we_o put_v on_o and_o off_o not_o as_o our_o garment_n which_o keep_v we_o warm_v in_o our_o outward_a part_n and_o never_o touch_v our_o inward_a but_o this_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n shall_v rule_v through_o the_o whole_a man_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o part_n nor_o no_o blood_n but_o it_o shall_v be_v uncorrupt_a there_o shall_v be_v no_o flesh_n in_o man_n but_o it_o shall_v be_v immortal_a there_o be_v no_o part_n but_o it_o shall_v be_v garnish_v and_o adorn_v with_o this_o rare_a and_o singular_a quality_n which_o shall_v run_v through_o the_o whole_a man_n and_o shall_v possess_v he_o whole_o and_o shall_v take_v that_o root_n in_o he_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v impossible_a for_o it_o to_o be_v extirpate_v for_o it_o be_v the_o glorious_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o shall_v plant_v they_o there_o and_o nothing_o therefore_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o supplant_v they_o we_o must_v put_v on_o incorruption_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o put_v on_o as_o the_o sun_n put_v on_o his_o glory_n never_o to_o put_v it_o off_o again_o as_o the_o star_n put_v on_o their_o light_n never_o to_o be_v eclipse_v never_o to_o have_v their_o light_n take_v from_o they_o we_o must_v not_o put_v on_o the_o robe_n and_o garment_n of_o immortality_n as_o king_n and_o prince_n put_v on_o their_o gay_a clothes_n and_o apparel_n chrysost_n chrysost_n as_o st._n chrysostom_n say_v when_o king_n and_o prince_n go_v to_o the_o bath_n on_o earth_n although_o they_o be_v never_o so_o glorious_o apparel_v yet_o when_o they_o go_v into_o the_o bath_n they_o must_v put_v off_o their_o clothes_n as_o well_o as_o other_o man_n and_o when_o they_o go_v to_o their_o grave_n they_o must_v divest_v themselves_o and_o go_v after_o the_o order_n of_o other_o man_n but_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o put_v on_o the_o clothes_n of_o incorruption_n as_o a_o man_n that_o go_v to_o the_o bath_n but_o they_o shall_v put_v it_o on_o as_o god_n have_v put_v on_o eternity_n they_o shall_v put_v it_o on_o as_o the_o sun_n have_v put_v on_o his_o light_n never_o to_o be_v dark_a they_o shall_v put_v it_o on_o as_o the_o moon_n and_o star_n which_o have_v the_o same_o beauty_n and_o figure_n continual_o although_o to_o we_o it_o seem_v different_a and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o star_n be_v not_o see_v in_o the_o day_n time_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o hindrance_n in_o they_o they_o have_v the_o same_o coat_n on_o they_o the_o saint_n shall_v have_v a_o garment_n like_o the_o coat_n and_o habit_n of_o the_o lily_n of_o which_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o solomon_n in_o all_o his_o royalty_n 12.27_o luke_n 12.27_o be_v not_o clothe_v like_o one_o of_o they_o their_o garment_n shall_v be_v so_o fit_a and_o so_o durable_a and_o so_o sweet_a and_o so_o natural_a without_o any_o price_n without_o any_o cost_n the_o lord_n shall_v then_o fit_v the_o garment_n to_o the_o party_n make_v of_o garment_n require_v great_a skill_n and_o much_o art_n for_o it_o be_v no_o ordinary_a thing_n for_o to_o fit_v a_o body_n true_o with_o a_o garment_n or_o vesture_n but_o the_o lord_n will_v show_v that_o wondrous_a art_n in_o fit_v this_o garment_n to_o our_o body_n in_o such_o a_o wondrous_a aptness_n in_o such_o a_o fitness_n and_o proportion_n and_o completeness_n that_o in_o every_o part_n of_o man_n body_n there_o shall_v appear_v this_o beauty_n and_o this_o comeliness_n this_o glorious_a apprehension_n of_o these_o heavenly_a quality_n shall_v appear_v in_o every_o part_n of_o man_n the_o lord_n shall_v so_o fit_v the_o body_n that_o the_o garment_n shall_v gloss_n and_o beautify_v and_o adorn_v the_o least_o part_n of_o the_o body_n therefore_o let_v we_o lift_v up_o our_o head_n 13.11_o rom._n 13.11_o for_o our_o salvation_n draw_v near_a than_o when_o we_o first_o believe_v and_o let_v we_o delight_v ourselves_o and_o labour_n to_o put_v on_o this_o new_a garment_n this_o bless_a vesture_n that_o we_o all_o seek_v so_o much_o after_o we_o be_v tire_v with_o these_o stink_a clothes_n use_v with_o these_o perish_a vanity_n of_o the_o world_n we_o be_v fain_o to_o perfume_v they_o with_o sweet_a odour_n as_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o time_n be_v now_o we_o can_v endure_v the_o grain_n of_o our_o own_o body_n but_o we_o must_v perfume_v they_o with_o exotic_a and_o strange_a smell_n but_o that_o garment_n shall_v be_v so_o perfume_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o amiable_a by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o it_o shall_v need_v no_o other_o smell_n or_o perfume_v the_o curiosity_n of_o our_o disposition_n can_v endure_v a_o garment_n a_o year_n together_o she_o be_v account_v a_o sordid_a woman_n that_o wear_v that_o garment_n this_o year_n which_o she_o wear_v the_o last_o and_o she_o be_v neglect_v and_o despise_v of_o her_o mean_n and_o friend_n but_o the_o lord_n shall_v so_o fit_v this_o garment_n that_o we_o shall_v still_o take_v delight_n we_o shall_v have_v a_o holy_a pride_n in_o wear_v of_o it_o and_o it_o shall_v still_o be_v the_o better_a for_o wear_v and_o have_v continual_o more_o splendour_n and_o beauty_n then_o when_o we_o first_o put_v it_o on_o for_o this_o mortal_a must_v put_v on_o immortality_n to_o all_o delight_n and_o glory_n to_o a_o last_a glory_n and_o a_o continual_a gloss_n and_o beauty_n that_o shall_v never_o fade_v but_o still_o increase_v to_o the_o party_n that_o wear_v it_o now_o let_v our_o appetite_n appear_v in_o desire_v of_o it_o when_o when_o shall_v it_o be_v and_o so_o i_o come_v to_o the_o last_o point_n that_o i_o will_v trouble_v you_o with_o at_o this_o time_n when_o great_a promise_n be_v make_v all_o delay_n be_v tedious_a 13.12_o prov._n 13.12_o hope_v that_o be_v defer_v kill_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n therefore_o it_o be_v natural_a for_o we_o still_o to_o call_v and_o urge_v for_o the_o time_n when_o lord_n when_o why_o when_o this_o corruptible_a have_v put_v on_o incorruption_n and_o this_o mortal_a have_v put_v on_o immortality_n when_o this_o
he_o have_v from_o god_n he_o cast_v all_o man_n into_o the_o prison_n of_o death_n and_o he_o keep_v they_o there_o and_o will_v keep_v they_o there_o by_o the_o common_a calamity_n of_o sin_n he_o keep_v all_o man_n body_n there_o to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n which_o the_o lord_n shall_v cause_v in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n but_o therefore_o the_o lord_n follow_v the_o way_n of_o justice_n and_o not_o the_o way_n of_o power_n for_o god_n be_v able_a to_o take_v we_o from_o death_n otherwise_o by_o other_o mean_n then_o by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o then_o he_o can_v not_o be_v just_a now_o god_n will_v teach_v we_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o follow_v the_o way_n of_o justice_n than_o the_o way_n of_o power_n for_o every_o man_n can_v be_v powerful_a the_o devil_n themselves_o have_v power_n but_o they_o have_v no_o justice_n therefore_o god_n then_o in_o justice_n will_v have_v the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n satisfy_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o will_v have_v he_o to_o die_v for_o they_o that_o shall_v have_v die_v that_o his_o death_n may_v be_v the_o life_n of_o many_o thousand_o that_o his_o death_n may_v be_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o power_n of_o death_n which_o have_v a_o commission_n give_v for_o the_o time_n that_o at_o the_o last_o may_v have_v a_o end_n to_o conclude_v because_o i_o see_v the_o time_n past_a let_v we_o also_o learn_v to_o frame_v ourselves_o to_o this_o high_a spirit_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o insult_v over_o death_n and_o then_o if_o we_o can_v insult_v over_o death_n much_o more_o may_v we_o insult_v over_o all_o the_o calamity_n of_o this_o life_n for_o what_o be_v so_o great_a a_o calamity_n as_o that_o why_o shall_v poverty_n oppress_v we_o why_o shall_v infamy_n vex_v we_o if_o sickness_n disease_n and_o death_n itself_o can_v oppress_v why_o shall_v trouble_v of_o conscience_n for_o sin_n oppress_v we_o when_o the_o grand_a enemy_n himself_o be_v conquer_v and_o when_o we_o have_v a_o part_n of_o the_o conquest_n we_o be_v soldier_n to_o that_o great_a captain_n and_o he_o communicate_v his_o victory_n unto_o we_o all_o aug._n john_n 16._o ult_n aug._n be_v of_o good_a comfort_n say_v christ_n for_o i_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n say_v st._n austin_n what_o do_v thou_o mean_v by_o this_o be_v of_o good_a comfort_n i_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n what_o have_v we_o to_o do_v to_o be_v of_o good_a comfort_n it_o belong_v not_o to_o we_o be_v thou_o of_o good_a comfort_n it_o pertain_v to_o thou_o what_o be_v we_o the_o better_a because_o thou_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n yes_o say_v he_o oh_o death_n thou_o which_o have_v be_v the_o devourer_n now_o thou_o be_v devour_v thyself_o thou_o that_o have_v swallow_v up_o man_n now_o thou_o be_v swallow_v up_o thyself_o by_o a_o more_o potent_a cause_n oh_o death_n he_o be_v wound_v for_o i_o that_o make_v i_o and_o he_o that_o through_o his_o death_n have_v swallow_v up_o thou_o he_o have_v conquer_v thou_o for_o i_o therefore_o i_o rejoice_v in_o he_o which_o be_v flesh_n of_o my_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o my_o bone_n his_o victory_n be_v my_o victory_n therefore_o he_o say_v be_v of_o good_a comfort_n i_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n and_o this_o the_o lord_n have_v teach_v we_o in_o many_o passage_n of_o his_o holy_a book_n that_o he_o may_v prepare_v we_o once_o to_o this_o courage_n to_o this_o great_a valour_n for_o in_o this_o a_o man_n be_v see_v more_o than_o in_o any_o thing_n else_o in_o the_o patient_a abide_n of_o trouble_n and_o misery_n in_o the_o patient_a endure_v of_o death_n in_o this_o present_a life_n all_o worldly_a passion_n be_v separate_v as_o chaff_n by_o the_o wind_n from_o the_o godly_a the_o wind_n blow_v away_o the_o chaff_n but_o so_o it_o can_v the_o good_a corn_n that_o fall_v still_o on_o the_o floor_n the_o chaff_n be_v blow_v away_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o temptation_n and_o persecution_n let_v we_o therefore_o take_v notice_n of_o that_o singular_a comfort_n which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n which_o all_o resolve_n at_o last_o into_o this_o one_o point_n oh_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n oh_o grave_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n in_o josuah_n 10._o 10.24_o joshuah_n 10.24_o we_o read_v that_o josuah_n there_o the_o prince_n and_o captain_n he_o bring_v out_o the_o five_o king_n that_o be_v close_v in_o a_o cave_n and_o a_o stone_n roll_v to_o the_o mouth_n of_o it_o till_o he_o shall_v come_v back_o he_o bring_v they_o forth_o and_o bid_v the_o captain_n tread_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o the_o king_n and_o not_o fear_n for_o say_v he_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n shall_v fight_v for_o you_o this_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o this_o glorious_a victory_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n over_o death_n all_o the_o potentate_n of_o hell_n be_v like_a to_o the_o five_o king_n of_o canaan_n which_o oppress_v all_o they_o meet_v as_o adonibezek_n they_o thumb_n they_o he_o cut_v off_o the_o thumb_n and_o toe_n of_o man_n and_o set_v they_o under_o his_o table_n as_o dog_n the_o lord_n signify_v this_o victory_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o victory_n of_o josuah_n over_o those_o five_o king_n and_o adonibezek_n that_o he_o will_v give_v a_o spiritual_a conquest_n over_o death_n hell_n sin_n and_o all_o the_o adversary_n that_o can_v oppose_v he_o and_o he_o will_v tread_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o all_o his_o opposer_n what_o be_v so_o base_a a_o part_n what_o be_v so_o base_a a_o thing_n as_o the_o foot_n of_o a_o man_n and_o what_o be_v so_o lofty_a a_o thing_n as_o the_o neck_n and_o yet_o the_o very_a foot_n of_o god_n child_n the_o base_a part_n shall_v tread_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o their_o enemy_n upon_o the_o neck_n of_o king_n themselves_o which_o be_v compass_v and_o surround_v with_o jewel_n and_o ornament_n yet_o they_o shall_v be_v subject_v to_o the_o base_a part_n even_o to_o the_o heel_n of_o godly_a man_n so_o great_a be_v the_o comfort_n of_o god_n child_n and_o as_o it_o be_v do_v then_o in_o josuahs_n time_n so_o also_o the_o comfort_n remain_v now_o so_o we_o see_v again_o the_o lord_n bid_v the_o people_n look_v back_o when_o they_o be_v past_o the_o red-sea_n look_v back_o upon_o the_o egyptian_n and_o the_o people_n &_o miriam_n have_v a_o song_n 15.1_o exod._n 15.1_o when_o they_o look_v back_o &_o see_v the_o egyptian_n float_v above_o the_o water_n a_o strange_a thing_n but_o god_n will_v have_v it_o so_o because_o he_o will_v have_v his_o people_n to_o have_v arm_n to_o have_v the_o arm_n of_o the_o egyptian_n to_o fight_v against_o amalek_n it_o be_v say_v the_o people_n look_v back_o and_o see_v they_o those_o proud_a spirit_a people_n those_o braggadocioe_n which_o think_v to_o have_v swallow_v they_o up_o quick_a and_o follow_v they_o with_o their_o chariot_n and_o army_n those_o which_o before_o can_v not_o be_v resist_v now_o the_o lord_n bring_v they_o to_o a_o calm_a he_o so_o cool_v the_o nation_n that_o the_o least_o boy_n may_v insult_v over_o they_o israel_n look_v and_o see_v they_o and_o take_v off_o their_o armour_n take_v off_o their_o ring_n and_o jewel_n and_o their_o costly_a apparel_n and_o furnish_v themselves_o with_o it_o when_o they_o go_v into_o the_o wilderness_n so_o shall_v the_o conquest_n of_o god_n child_n be_v over_o death_n although_o it_o have_v be_v full_a of_o threaten_v full_a of_o terror_n and_o blood_n before_o yet_o the_o lord_n will_v bring_v it_o into_o the_o flood_n into_o the_o red_a sea_n he_o will_v overwhelm_v it_o in_o the_o water_n of_o his_o omnipotency_n and_o his_o child_n shall_v look_v back_o and_o shall_v see_v he_o and_o spoil_v he_o that_o be_v the_o spoiler_n and_o destroy_v he_o that_o be_v the_o destroyer_n and_o they_o shall_v take_v his_o weapon_n from_o he_o and_o make_v use_n of_o they_o to_o their_o own_o purpose_n and_o they_o shall_v say_v as_o the_o people_n may_v have_v say_v to_o the_o egyptian_n where_o be_v thy_o brag_n that_o thou_o use_v before_o thou_o be_v enclose_v now_o in_o thy_o own_o net_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n oh_o death_n oh_o hell_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n the_o lord_n shall_v turn_v the_o term_n the_o lord_n shall_v make_v the_o field_n to_o go_v on_o his_o own_o side_n and_o take_v away_o the_o conquest_n from_o the_o adverse_a party_n it_o have_v be_v a_o ancient_a proverb_n that_o to_o pluck_v the_o beard_n of_o a_o dead_a lion_n even_o for_o child_n themselves_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n a_o poor_a child_n that_o can_v endure_v the_o noise_n or_o the_o sight_n of_o a_o live_a lion_n chrysost_n chrysost_n as_o st._n chrysostome_n say_v the_o boy_n
in_o his_o time_n yet_o at_o last_o he_o shall_v fall_v and_o be_v conquer_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o caesar_n and_o by_o his_o prowess_n be_v out_v both_o of_o his_o honour_n and_o of_o his_o life_n and_o caesar_n himself_o in_o the_o height_n of_o all_o that_o glory_n that_o can_v come_v upon_o a_o man_n in_o this_o world_n there_o be_v never_o any_o before_o he_o or_o the_o like_a shall_v be_v after_o he_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o hold_v his_o state_n but_o he_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o conspirator_n a_o sort_n of_o bloody_a murderer_n that_o shall_v kill_v he_o in_o his_o counsel-chamber_n so_o uncertain_a be_v the_o smile_n of_o this_o world_n that_o there_o be_v no_o victory_n constant_a but_o still_o she_o fly_v move_v and_o change_v her_o tent_n and_o tabernacle_n from_o one_o side_n to_o another_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v no_o boast_n or_o brag_v in_o these_o earthly_a and_o worldly_a conquest_n which_o have_v make_v the_o wise_a emperor_n of_o the_o world_n after_o they_o have_v have_v a_o good_a gale_n of_o fortune_n as_o they_o call_v it_o after_o they_o have_v prosper_v a_o while_n for_o fear_n of_o cross_a blow_n after_o they_o have_v leave_v their_o honour_n and_o betake_v they_o to_o a_o solitary_a life_n to_o live_v in_o monastery_n lest_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o foul_a end_n after_o such_o goodly_a and_o fair_a proceed_n but_o in_o this_o case_n in_o this_o victory_n that_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o there_o be_v no_o uncertainty_n there_o be_v no_o inconstancy_n to_o be_v fear_v janus_n temple_n be_v shut_v for_o ever_o they_o have_v a_o custom_n among_o the_o roman_n they_o worship_v a_o certain_a god_n which_o they_o think_v be_v the_o lord_n and_o tutor_n of_o their_o city_n which_o they_o call_v janus_n which_o have_v in_o rome_n a_o great_a temple_n the_o door_n whereof_o stand_v open_v all_o the_o while_o they_o be_v in_o war_n and_o shut_v in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o peace_n and_o they_o be_v so_o cumber_v with_o war_n for_o 800._o year_n together_o that_o in_o all_o that_o time_n the_o door_n of_o janus_n temple_n be_v but_o thrice_o shut_v they_o be_v always_o open_a to_o show_v that_o the_o war_n be_v open_a and_o therefore_o they_o give_v their_o god_n leave_v to_o go_v out_o and_o in_o to_o succour_v they_o or_o else_o they_o think_v his_o arm_n can_v not_o reach_v his_o power_n can_v not_o extend_v to_o their_o aid_n see_v the_o ridiculous_a and_o foolish_a vanity_n of_o the_o heathen_a when_o the_o war_n be_v cease_v they_o shut_v the_o door_n to_o keep_v in_o their_o god_n there_o be_v no_o use_n of_o he_o then_o now_o this_o temple_n i_o say_v for_o 800._o year_n be_v in_o all_o that_o time_n but_o three_o time_n shut_v first_o in_o the_o time_n of_o numa_n pompilius_n second_o in_o the_o time_n of_o tytus_fw-la maneus_fw-la as_o tytus_fw-la livius_n say_v after_o the_o carthaginian_a war_n and_o three_o by_o augustus_n caesar_n but_o when_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v when_o god_n shall_v give_v to_o this_o corruption_n incorruption_n and_o to_o this_o mortal_a immortality_n than_o there_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o a_o cessation_n of_o war_n the_o temple_n of_o janus_n shall_v never_o more_o be_v open_v it_o shall_v be_v shut_v for_o everlasting_a there_o shall_v be_v no_o cause_n of_o war_n but_o the_o people_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v in_o perfect_a peace_n with_o the_o lord_n and_o shall_v live_v under_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o protection_n they_o shall_v live_v secure_a for_o ever_o plutarch_n say_v when_o philip_n king_n of_o macedon_n have_v get_v a_o great_a victory_n at_o cheronia_n he_o write_v to_o archimedes_n and_o he_o use_v lofty_a speech_n in_o his_o letter_n as_o be_v proud_a and_o puff_v up_o with_o his_o late_a victory_n archimedes_n reply_n to_o he_o no_o more_o but_o this_o sir_n say_v he_o you_o write_v stately_a to_o i_o in_o high_a term_n and_o i_o partly_o know_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o but_o if_o you_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n but_o to_o measure_v your_o own_o shadow_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o that_o it_o be_v no_o great_a nor_o no_o large_a than_o it_o be_v before_o your_o victory_n you_o be_v as_o great_a a_o man_n then_o and_o as_o many_o inch_n about_o as_o you_o be_v now_o and_o it_o be_v true_a in_o worldly_a thing_n chance_n as_o they_o call_v it_o be_v so_o variable_a that_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v how_o he_o shall_v begin_v or_o how_o he_o shall_v end_v but_o in_o this_o victory_n which_o the_o lord_n vouchsafe_v we_o in_o christ_n jesus_n it_o hold_v not_o for_o the_o victory_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v there_o shall_v make_v our_o shadow_n great_a and_o it_o shall_v make_v our_o person_n more_o honourable_a and_o full_a of_o power_n and_o majesty_n 15.44_o 1._o cor._n 15.44_o for_o it_o be_v sow_v in_o dishonour_n it_o rise_v again_o in_o honour_n it_o be_v sow_v in_o weakness_n it_o rise_v again_o in_o power_n the_o victory_n therefore_o that_o we_o have_v in_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o like_o the_o victory_n that_o philip_n the_o king_n of_o macedon_n get_v that_o his_o shadow_n be_v no_o big_a than_o before_o but_o this_o victory_n in_o christ_n be_v a_o great_a enlarger_n of_o man_n and_o of_o all_o the_o part_n and_o faculty_n in_o he_o that_o he_o be_v not_o like_o himself_o as_o he_o be_v before_o no_o more_o than_o a_o honourable_a thing_n be_v like_o a_o dishonourable_a or_o a_o strong_a thing_n be_v like_a unto_o a_o weak_a now_o to_o come_v to_o the_o order_n o●der_n o●der_n of_o the_o word_n read_v unto_o you_o here_o the_o holy_a apostle_n explain_v that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v before_o when_o he_o insult_v over_o death_n a_o man_n may_v ask_v what_o be_v the_o reason_n thou_o take_v upon_o thou_o so_o much_o see_v death_n shall_v conquer_v thou_o as_o well_o as_o other_o man_n and_o thou_o must_v die_v as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n that_o have_v go_v before_o thou_o to_o give_v a_o reason_n therefore_o of_o it_o he_o show_v that_o it_o be_v no_o presumption_n or_o idle_a imagination_n of_o himself_o but_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n confer_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n for_o say_v he_o i_o have_v good_a reason_n to_o insult_v as_o i_o do_v i_o know_v when_o that_o bless_a time_n shall_v come_v we_o shall_v have_v no_o enemy_n against_o we_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o enemy_n it_o shall_v be_v either_o death_n or_o sin_n or_o the_o law_n but_o there_o shall_v be_v none_o of_o these_o and_o therefore_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o enemy_n but_o a_o perpetual_a end_n and_o issue_n of_o man_n for_o ever_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o death_n for_o why_o because_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o sin_n for_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n and_o death_n can_v come_v upon_o man_n but_o by_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n which_o be_v conceive_v for_o sin_n which_o be_v take_v away_o death_n must_v needs_o cease_v for_o the_o work_n end_v the_o wage_n must_v needs_o end_v and_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n but_o how_o will_v you_o prove_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o sin_n because_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o law_n for_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o law_n and_o the_o lord_n shall_v give_v that_o glory_n to_o the_o body_n that_o shall_v rise_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o need_v any_o law_n but_o they_o shall_v be_v a_o law_n to_o themselves_o and_o every_o man_n shall_v love_v god_n and_o please_v god_n not_o by_o constraint_n not_o by_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o law_n and_o commandment_n but_o from_o the_o ducture_n of_o his_o own_o free-spirit_n that_o shall_v lead_v and_o conjoin_v and_o make_v he_o one_o spirit_n with_o the_o lord_n therefore_o that_o which_o the_o holy_a apostle_n say_v before_o be_v most_o constant_a and_o true_a that_o because_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o enemy_n then_o leave_v therefore_o we_o may_v boast_v in_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n which_o have_v give_v we_o perfect_a victory_n over_o all_o our_o enemy_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o enemy_n leave_v because_o there_o shall_v be_v neither_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o grand_a cause_n the_o arch-enemy_n of_o mankind_n for_o that_o be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n who_o know_v no_o sin_n he_o that_o know_v no_o sin_n god_n make_v he_o sin_n for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n mark_v it_o say_v the_o holy_a apostle_n that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n when_o be_v christ_n make_v sin_n for_o we_o in_o this_o miserable_a life_n and_o when_o shall_v we_o be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o that_o bless_a life_n therefore_o
must_v endure_v death_n itself_o that_o prick_n must_v gall_v we_o to_o the_o heart_n all_o the_o power_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n can_v deliver_v we_o from_o it_o let_v we_o as_o well_o as_o we_o can_v entertain_v it_o therefore_o and_o not_o kick_v against_o the_o prick_n for_o we_o double_v our_o wound_n if_o we_o do_v and_o plague_v ourselves_o more_o there_o be_v no_o resist_v of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o necessity_n let_v we_o take_v heed_n withal_o see_v sin_n be_v call_v the_o prick_n of_o death_n or_o the_o death_n of_o death_n which_o be_v all_o one_o let_v we_o take_v heed_n i_o say_v that_o we_o multiply_v not_o sin_n forasmuch_o as_o that_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o double_a and_o redouble_a our_o torment_n to_o a_o infinite_a measure_n if_o a_o man_n be_v slay_v with_o one_o stab_n of_o a_o goad_n or_o with_o a_o prick_n of_o a_o stelletto_fw-it though_o they_o be_v no_o less_o mortal_a yet_o they_o be_v more_o sufferable_a but_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v cast_v upon_o a_o hurdle_n that_o be_v full_a of_o nail_n and_o be_v roll_v up_o and_o down_o upon_o that_o that_o be_v one_o of_o the_o terrible_a death_n that_o ever_o be_v find_v out_o and_o such_o a_o death_n every_o sinful_a man_n cast_v himself_o into_o the_o more_o he_o sin_n and_o give_v way_n unto_o his_o head_n strong_a affection_n the_o more_o sharp_a nail_n point_n and_o prick_v he_o cast_v himself_o upon_o let_v we_o take_v heed_n therefore_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n the_o more_o we_o sin_n the_o more_o nail_n and_o goad_n and_o prick_v we_o thrust_v into_o our_o own_o side_n for_o there_o be_v no_o sinner_n but_o as_o he_o sin_n more_o so_o he_o offend_v god_n more_o and_o so_o he_o bring_v more_o vengeance_n upon_o himself_o in_o a_o fearful_a manner_n the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n but_o what_o sin_n be_v this_o be_v it_o to_o be_v account_v the_o actual_a sin_n that_o man_n commit_v or_o the_o original_a sin_n in_o which_o they_o be_v bear_v sure_o it_o be_v true_a of_o both_o but_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n be_v here_o to_o speak_v of_o original_a sin_n for_o we_o see_v this_o a_o true_a doctrine_n upon_o chlidren_n too_o that_o never_o commit_v actual_a sin_n therefore_o we_o must_v give_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n the_o most_o large_a and_o utmost_a extent_n because_o we_o see_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o place_n extend_v itself_o so_o far_o for_o child_n themselves_o be_v prick_v to_o death_n not_o by_o actual_a transgression_n according_a to_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n but_o by_o a_o inbred_a corruption_n which_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o seed_n of_o their_o parent_n there_o lie_v a_o poison_n in_o the_o seed_n of_o man_n which_o come_v from_o the_o first_o fall_n and_o corruption_n of_o man_n in_o the_o material_n of_o adam_n in_o the_o substance_n and_o bodily_a part_n there_o lie_v a_o poison_n of_o corruption_n and_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o intellectual_a thing_n a_o matter_n of_o the_o understanding_n for_o there_o be_v no_o beast_n can_v sin_v because_o it_o have_v not_o the_o intellectual_n it_o want_v the_o understanding_n it_o be_v strange_a i_o say_v that_o it_o shall_v rise_v unto_o a_o material_a thing_n which_o have_v no_o understanding_n until_o the_o soul_n be_v add_v but_o so_o the_o lord_n have_v ordain_v that_o in_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o corrupt_a seed_n of_o man_n there_o shall_v be_v infuse_v a_o soul_n which_o lie_v in_o a_o fusty_a vessel_n shall_v contract_v the_o impurity_n it_o find_v there_o in_o the_o matter_n and_o so_o shall_v work_v in_o both_o together_o the_o damnation_n of_o the_o party_n in_o which_o it_o be_v behold_v therefore_o what_o that_o fearful_a state_n or_o condition_n be_v in_o which_o we_o be_v conceive_v and_o bear_v into_o the_o world_n it_o be_v that_o which_o death_n use_v for_o a_o sting_n it_o be_v that_o fearful_a weapon_n that_o wound_v we_o and_o pierce_v we_o not_o only_o for_o one_o death_n but_o for_o two_o for_o the_o second_o death_n even_o everlasting_a destruction_n if_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n interpose_v not_o this_o be_v that_o law_n in_o our_o member_n that_o captivate_v and_o make_v we_o slave_n and_o carry_v we_o away_o from_o the_o law_n of_o god_n this_o be_v that_o prepuce_fw-la or_o uncircumcision_n of_o the_o heart_n that_o make_v we_o philistine_n and_o alien_n and_o stranger_n from_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v that_o flint_n stone_n that_o will_v not_o be_v wrought_v upon_o by_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n but_o harden_v itself_o against_o all_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v that_o seminary_n of_o all_o mischief_n the_o original_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o corruption_n whatsoever_o a_o man_n can_v think_v of_o it_o be_v include_v in_o original_a sin_n for_o adam_n when_o he_o fall_v from_o god_n he_o be_v a_o thief_n a_o murderer_n he_o be_v a_o blasphemer_n he_o be_v a_o man_n give_v to_o concupiscence_n he_o be_v a_o false_a witness_n against_o his_o neighbour_n he_o be_v the_o breaker_n of_o every_o commandment_n by_o that_o action_n and_o his_o child_n take_v it_o from_o he_o by_o original_a sin_n which_o be_v the_o mother_n sin_n of_o all_o abomination_n that_o may_v be_v imagine_v and_o as_o we_o begin_v it_o so_o we_o continue_v the_o cherisher_n and_o nourisher_n of_o it_o we_o feed_v it_o we_o bring_v it_o up_o we_o suckle_v this_o brat_n of_o perdition_n and_o filthiness_n to_o our_o own_o destruction_n that_o every_o man_n must_v needs_o be_v force_v when_o he_o understand_v himself_o to_o cry_v out_o with_o the_o apostle_n oh_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o this_o body_n of_o death_n it_o be_v a_o body_n of_o death_n it_o be_v not_o a_o limb_n it_o be_v not_o a_o superficies_n it_o be_v not_o a_o quality_n it_o be_v not_o a_o small_a matter_n but_o it_o be_v a_o body_n it_o be_v a_o legion_n of_o devil_n it_o be_v a_o multitude_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v a_o kingdom_n of_o hell_n this_o be_v that_o beastly_a corruption_n which_o we_o have_v all_o contract_v let_v we_o labour_n in_o prayer_n and_o solicit_v god_n that_o the_o power_n of_o this_o monster_n may_v be_v remove_v for_o although_o we_o have_v no_o actual_a transgression_n but_o we_o can_v live_v as_o pure_a and_o sincere_a as_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n in_o respect_n of_o actual_a sin_n yet_o as_o long_o as_o we_o have_v this_o moisture_n in_o we_o the_o fire_n be_v not_o out_o though_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v smother_v and_o though_o it_o break_v not_o forth_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o quench_v it_o be_v not_o quite_o slack_v so_o much_o of_o the_o first_o part_n the_o proportion_n the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n that_o be_v original_a sin_n because_o if_o we_o shall_v take_v it_o for_o actual_a sin_n than_o we_o can_v not_o take_v child_n into_o the_o definition_n but_o they_o be_v sting_v to_o death_n they_o die_v and_o yet_o they_o have_v no_o actual_a sin_n therefore_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o original_a sin_n proper_o but_o how_o come_v death_n and_o sin_n to_o be_v thus_o potent_a and_o strong_a the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o by_o the_o law_n the_o strength_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o law_n till_o the_o law_n come_v the_o edge_n and_o point_n of_o sin_n be_v dull_a it_o be_v blunt_a when_o the_o law_n come_v it_o whet_v it_o and_o sharpen_v it_o again_o and_o make_v it_o more_o pierce_a than_o ever_o it_o be_v before_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o law_n and_o how_o be_v this_o god_n give_v the_o law_n for_o a_o good_a law_n for_o a_o holy_a and_o just_a law_n how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o be_v the_o strength_n of_o sin_n it_o seem_v god_n machinate_v a_o mischief_n to_o mankind_n to_o give_v he_o that_o which_o shall_v make_v he_o more_o sinful_a but_o you_o must_v understand_v it_o be_v one_o thing_n that_o a_o man_n do_v upon_o purpose_n and_o for_o good_a and_o it_o be_v another_o thing_n when_o the_o man_n to_o who_o it_o be_v do_v can_v receive_v it_o so_o god_n give_v the_o law_n indeed_o as_o a_o true_a direction_n for_o the_o reformation_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n but_o the_o party_n that_o receive_v it_o do_v not_o take_v it_o thus_o thus_o by_o occasion_n not_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o but_o by_o the_o ill_a acceptance_n of_o the_o party_n it_o come_v to_o be_v thus_o to_o be_v the_o strength_n of_o sin_n as_o when_o a_o physician_n that_o be_v skilful_a in_o his_o profession_n he_o do_v all_o that_o belong_v to_o a_o skilful_a man_n the_o drug_n that_o he_o give_v and_o the_o ingredient_n be_v able_a to_o work_v their_o effect_n if_o they_o fall_v
damage_n and_o frustration_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v not_o mean_a to_o set_v man_n a_o work_n with_o a_o fool_n errand_n to_o set_v man_n on_o work_n without_o ensue_a profit_n the_o bless_a god_n that_o can_v lie_v to_o any_o man_n he_o have_v promise_v and_o assure_v that_o those_o that_o labour_n in_o he_o they_o shall_v not_o lose_v their_o reward_n branch_n the_o reason_n subdivide_v into_o 4._o branch_n first_o then_o of_o the_o labour_n second_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a your_o labour_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a three_o why_o it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a because_o it_o be_v in_o the_o lord_n four_o how_o we_o come_v to_o this_o you_o know_v this_o be_v so_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o no_o man_n can_v make_v question_n of_o labour_n 1._o the_o labour_n first_o of_o the_o labour_n it_o be_v true_a all_o the_o part_n of_o religion_n be_v laborious_a and_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o take_v such_o pain_n as_o a_o christian_a do_v when_o the_o great_a conqueror_n of_o the_o world_n have_v subdue_v whole_a nation_n yet_o the_o mastery_n be_v hard_o for_o they_o to_o achieve_v over_o themselves_o that_o be_v the_o labour_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o the_o labour_n that_o be_v speak_v of_o here_o be_v chief_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o three_o head_n first_o to_o the_o minister_n of_o corinth_n minister_n this_o labour_n be_v refer_v to_o 3._o person_n 1._o minister_n you_o that_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n your_o labour_n be_v not_o lose_v therefore_o have_v a_o good_a confidence_n you_o preach_v that_o which_o be_v true_a you_o preach_v not_o lie_n and_o fancy_n but_o the_o doctrine_n that_o you_o preach_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v raise_v again_o it_o be_v as_o true_a as_o god_n be_v true_a therefore_o you_o that_o be_v preacher_n hold_v on_o be_v not_o dismay_v whatsoever_o those_o heretic_n and_o adversary_n go_v about_o to_o cast_v against_o you_o and_o oppose_v you_o in_o your_o way_n keep_v the_o tenant_n of_o your_o profession_n hold_v on_o constant_o for_o your_o labour_n be_v not_o lose_v the_o lord_n shall_v make_v it_o good_a it_o be_v a_o idle_a thing_n for_o a_o man_n to_o stand_v in_o the_o pulpit_n and_o tell_v nothing_o but_o lie_n to_o the_o people_n such_o a_o man_n deserve_v to_o be_v stone_v to_o death_n for_o it_o to_o abuse_v the_o faith_n and_o to_o abuse_v the_o understanding_n of_o man_n to_o tell_v they_o thing_n that_o god_n never_o mean_v to_o do_v and_o the_o minister_n of_o corinth_n be_v man_n that_o be_v but_o novice_n and_o there_o be_v so_o many_o heretical_a fellow_n among_o they_o that_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o answer_v their_o sophism_n and_o so_o they_o begin_v to_o leave_v off_o their_o preach_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n because_o that_o be_v full_a of_o argument_n and_o difficulty_n and_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o evade_v out_o of_o it_o and_o answer_v their_o opposer_n therefore_o they_o begin_v to_o give_v over_o that_o and_o take_v some_o other_o point_n but_o no_o say_v the_o apostle_n go_v on_o with_o this_o doctrine_n let_v all_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n open_v themselves_o they_o shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o you_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o lord_n arm_n be_v high_a and_o mighty_a than_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n and_o that_o which_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n will_v make_v it_o true_a in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n whatsoever_o the_o gate_n and_o power_n of_o hell_n can_v make_v against_o it_o that_o be_v the_o first_o sense_n which_o saint_n basil_n basil_n s._n basil_n follow_v and_o indeed_o it_o be_v good_a and_o true_a another_o sense_n be_v of_o the_o brethren_n in_o corinth_n that_o be_v of_o the_o common_a faith_n among_o they_o which_o be_v exercise_v in_o the_o agony_n of_o a_o christian_n life_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v brethren_n i_o understand_v you_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n scoff_v at_o and_o laugh_v at_o they_o think_v you_o be_v fool_n they_o imagine_v that_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o this_o be_v a_o mere_a dream_n they_o account_v you_o creature_n of_o another_o world_n and_o such_o as_o have_v a_o vain_a belief_n and_o persuade_v yourselves_o of_o these_o schism_n which_o these_o new_a teacher_n have_v put_v into_o your_o head_n and_o i_o see_v you_o have_v great_a trouble_n in_o your_o life_n and_o these_o trouble_n that_o you_o have_v by_o your_o persecution_n and_o trouble_n of_o conscience_n which_o be_v all_o sweeten_v by_o the_o resurrection_n they_o be_v aggravate_v so_o that_o as_o i_o beseech_v my_o brethren_n that_o teach_v so_o also_o i_o entreat_v you_o that_o hear_v to_o abound_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o as_o they_o preach_v and_o teach_v so_o that_o you_o may_v perceive_v this_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a although_o the_o world_n resist_v it_o never_o so_o much_o this_o be_v the_o agony_n of_o a_o christian_n life_n with_o heretic_n with_o schismatic_n with_o himself_o with_o the_o world_n this_o be_v the_o agony_n which_o a_o christian_a be_v bear_v unto_o which_o some_o of_o the_o father_n take_v to_o be_v the_o labour_n here_o speak_v of_o so_o st._n jerome_n epiphanius_n epiphan_n s._n jerom._n s._n epiphan_n and_o divers_a other_o follow_v that_o but_o that_o which_o i_o take_v to_o be_v the_o best_a be_v the_o sense_n which_o st._n austin_n and_o some_o other_o give_v aug._n s._n aug._n which_o be_v this_o your_o labour_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a that_o be_v your_o labour_n of_o love_n mark_v the_o apostle_n there_o recite_v all_o the_o intellectual_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 1.4_o 1_o thes_n 1.4_o he_o speak_v there_o of_o the_o labour_n of_o love_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o have_v so_o much_o labour_n in_o it_o as_o love_v although_o it_o be_v without_o pain_n if_o we_o regard_v the_o outward_a act_n and_o work_v yet_o the_o employment_n be_v great_a nothing_o be_v so_o laborious_a as_o love_v it_o be_v still_o do_v good_a comfort_v those_o that_o be_v distress_v bestow_v somewhat_o to_o the_o poor_a out_o of_o that_o little_a it_o have_v to_o spare_v it_o out_o of_o its_o own_o mouth_n to_o give_v admonition_n to_o the_o peevish_a to_o deal_v wise_o with_o froward_a spirit_n a_o man_n be_v as_o good_a go_v about_o to_o tame_v a_o wild_a tiger_n as_o to_o tell_v man_n that_o be_v settle_v in_o evil_a course_n of_o their_o fault_n yet_o a_o christian_a must_v do_v this_o so_o this_o be_v that_o labour_n of_o love_n the_o love_n of_o that_o bless_a day_n the_o love_n to_o the_o time_n when_o a_o man_n body_n shall_v be_v raise_v it_o make_v he_o change_v his_o place_n remove_v his_o lodging_n it_o make_v he_o spend_v his_o mean_n it_o make_v he_o do_v all_o the_o good_a he_o can_v in_o this_o world_n because_o he_o hope_v for_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n of_o his_o body_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 20._o act_n 20._o for_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n i_o be_o bind_v with_o this_o chain_n this_o be_v that_o labour_n for_o we_o do_v not_o labour_v for_o nothing_o and_o endure_v all_o this_o toil_n and_o trouble_n but_o because_o we_o look_v for_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a this_o be_v that_o labour_n of_o love_n that_o we_o must_v strive_v to_o find_v in_o ourselves_o that_o same_o unsatiable_a and_o unwearied_a labour_n that_o be_v still_o work_v still_o teach_v without_o any_o intermission_n and_o although_o we_o be_v not_o call_v into_o the_o vineyard_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o at_o one_o time_n all_o at_o one_o hour_n but_o some_o at_o the_o three_o some_o at_o the_o six_o some_o at_o the_o nine_o and_o some_o at_o the_o eleven_o hour_n and_o though_o the_o work_n of_o they_o be_v not_o all_o alike_o but_o some_o bear_v the_o burden_n in_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o day_n and_o some_o be_v call_v at_o the_o evening_n yet_o we_o see_v all_o wrought_v until_o the_o evening_n so_o long_o as_o they_o can_v work_v so_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v never_o to_o be_v lay_v aside_o 9.62_o luke_n 9.62_o no_o man_n that_o put_v his_o hand_n to_o the_o plough_n and_o look_v back_o be_v meet_v and_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v remember_v lot_n wife_n 17.32_o luke_n 17.32_o but_o we_o must_v be_v constant_a as_o the_o greek_n word_n here_o signify_v a_o chap_a labour_n a_o labour_n that_o cut_v a_o man_n in_o piece_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o so_o divide_v between_o the_o sinew_n and_o the_o joint_n and_o the_o marrow_n as_o the_o labour_n that_o proceed_v from_o true_a love_n and_o friendship_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o make_v a_o man_n more_o settle_v himself_o
of_o custom_n and_o duty_n these_o man_n shame_v themselves_o infinite_o and_o disturb_v the_o order_n of_o nature_n and_o perhaps_o lie_v up_o a_o curse_n for_o their_o own_o soul_n the_o last_o thing_n that_o i_o observe_v hence_o be_v this_o how_o will_v he_o make_v the_o church_n of_o galatia_n to_o provoke_v they_o how_o will_v he_o bring_v the_o corinthian_n to_o this_o how_o shall_v it_o be_v bring_v about_o the_o corinthian_n may_v have_v object_v and_o say_v what_o do_v you_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n have_v not_o we_o poor_a enough_o of_o our_o own_o as_o we_o use_v to_o say_v now_o adays_o we_o will_v give_v nothing_o abroad_o because_o we_o have_v poor_a at_o home_n it_o be_v true_a a_o poor_a man_n neighbour_n that_o be_v near_o unto_o he_o aught_o in_o the_o first_o and_o principal_a place_n to_o be_v regard_v no_o question_n of_o it_o yet_o there_o ought_v something_o to_o be_v do_v to_o the_o poor_a at_o large_a now_o lest_o the_o corinthian_n shall_v say_v they_o will_v be_v at_o their_o choice_n and_o they_o will_v either_o do_v or_o they_o will_v not_o do_v and_o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n be_v of_o no_o power_n to_o prescribe_v they_o or_o their_o example_n be_v of_o no_o force_n to_o move_v they_o by_o way_n of_o necessity_n the_o apostle_n therefore_o tell_v they_o i_o do_v appoint_v so_o by_o this_o he_o show_v that_o he_o come_v with_o full_a authority_n as_o speak_v more_o authentical_o and_o more_o powerful_o not_o by_o persuasion_n and_o counsel_n but_o by_o his_o apostolical_a authority_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v by_o christ_n command_n as_o i_o have_v appoint_v good_n the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o dispose_v of_o man_n good_n we_o learn_v by_o this_o that_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o dispose_v of_o man_n good_n and_o yet_o this_o must_v be_v do_v in_o a_o gentle_a manner_n with_o a_o reservation_n of_o their_o own_o will_n for_o the_o quantity_n for_o in_o the_o quantity_n it_o can_v say_v say_v saint_n chrysostome_n thus_o much_o or_o thus_o much_o but_o must_v leave_v it_o to_o a_o man_n own_o conscience_n according_a as_o god_n have_v enrich_v he_o but_o as_o i_o say_v before_o whensoever_o god_n have_v give_v a_o prosperous_a voyage_n according_a as_o a_o man_n have_v have_v a_o good_a journey_n in_o his_o trade_n so_o he_o must_v prosper_v god_n saint_n according_a as_o god_n have_v prosper_v he_o but_o for_o the_o main_a point_n that_o he_o must_v give_v something_o it_o lie_v in_o the_o church_n power_n to_o command_v that_o almsdeed_n and_o work_n of_o charity_n shall_v be_v do_v that_o be_v as_o much_o in_o the_o church_n power_n as_o that_o we_o shall_v keep_v a_o sabbath_n day_n that_o man_n shall_v meet_v together_o and_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o administer_v baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o the_o church_n we_o know_v these_o thing_n the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v and_o constitute_v and_o as_o much_o power_n have_v the_o church_n to_o ordain_v the_o collection_n for_o the_o poor_a for_o all_o come_v from_o one_o authority_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v here_o as_o i_o have_v appoint_v so_o then_o the_o corinthian_n be_v bind_v not_o only_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n but_o by_o that_o apostolical_a power_n by_o that_o authority_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v receive_v from_o christ_n feed_v my_o sheep_n feed_v they_o with_o your_o prayer_n feed_v they_o with_o your_o preach_n feed_v they_o with_o your_o exhortation_n feed_v they_o in_o give_v they_o bread_n for_o the_o body_n feed_v they_o by_o your_o example_n feed_v they_o every_o way_n that_o may_v be_v helpful_a and_o commodious_a to_o they_o howbeit_o out_o of_o this_o we_o must_v not_o gather_v that_o the_o church_n have_v that_o fullness_n of_o power_n to_o impose_v what_o they_o listen_v and_o to_o oppress_v by_o way_n of_o exaction_n to_o thrust_v in_o upon_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n what_o it_o please_v they_o no_o the_o apostle_n give_v no_o way_n here_o for_o annates_fw-la he_o give_v no_o way_n for_o peter-pence_n nor_o for_o such_o kind_n of_o collection_n for_o those_o be_v exaction_n and_o extortion_n against_o the_o good_a will_n of_o the_o party_n to_o the_o impoverish_n of_o they_o that_o give_v it_o and_o to_o the_o exceed_a enrich_a of_o those_o that_o receive_v it_o therefore_o in_o such_o a_o case_n we_o must_v take_v notice_n how_o far_o the_o church_n authority_n do_v extend_v that_o be_v when_o it_o be_v to_o do_v good_a to_o they_o of_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o saint_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o good_a of_o they_o that_o want_v of_o they_o that_o be_v disable_v by_o age_n or_o by_o nature_n or_o by_o misfortune_n to_o do_v good_a to_o they_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o this_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o raise_v out_o of_o a_o man_n substance_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o be_v a_o man_n own_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o he_o can_v say_v he_o take_v comfort_n in_o unless_o the_o poor_a man_n take_v part_n of_o it_o there_o be_v no_o pound_n that_o thou_o have_v except_v the_o poor_a man_n have_v a_o quantity_n out_o of_o it_o if_o it_o be_v but_o a_o farthing_n in_o a_o pound_n except_o he_o have_v something_o from_o it_o there_o can_v be_v no_o rest_n nor_o quiet_a to_o thou_o of_o it_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v unto_o man_n that_o as_o he_o have_v bless_v they_o so_o they_o shall_v return_v some_o tribute_n some_o acknowledgement_n to_o his_o poor_a member_n on_o earth_n as_o i_o have_v appoint_v in_o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n this_o be_v the_o first_o motive_n i_o lay_v no_o new_a thing_n upon_o your_o shoulder_n no_o new_a burden_n upon_o you_o but_o that_o which_o other_o church_n bear_v as_o well_o as_o you_o nay_o that_o which_o poor_a church_n as_o that_o of_o galatia_n which_o be_v not_o comparable_a to_o you_o bear_v the_o same_o burden_n therefore_o i_o pray_v do_v you_o bear_v it_o it_o be_v the_o common_a taxation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o collection_n for_o the_o poor_a the_o tax_n for_o the_o poor_a it_o have_v be_v still_o a_o follower_n and_o a_o concomitant_a of_o the_o gospel_n to_o have_v mind_n of_o the_o poor_a saint_n it_o be_v the_o charge_n give_v to_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n gal._n 2._o as_o a_o chief_a part_n of_o their_o office_n to_o be_v mindful_a of_o the_o poor_a it_o 2._o motive_n the_o safe_a carriage_n of_o it_o the_o second_o motive_n be_v take_v from_o the_o fair_a carriage_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o this_o matter_n for_o the_o corinthian_n may_v fear_v when_o they_o have_v make_v this_o collection_n and_o shall_v send_v it_o that_o it_o will_v miscarry_v for_o jerusalem_n be_v almost_o a_o thousand_o mile_n off_o from_o corinth_n take_v the_o near_a way_n that_o may_v be_v and_o there_o may_v many_o casualty_n fall_v out_o before_o it_o come_v there_o it_o may_v be_v take_v by_o tyrant_n or_o they_o may_v be_v false_a among_o themselves_o so_o that_o they_o know_v not_o whether_o ever_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o hand_n of_o they_o that_o shall_v have_v it_o tender_v they_o therefore_o for_o that_o he_o say_v he_o will_v see_v to_o it_o they_o shall_v be_v sure_a it_o shall_v be_v carry_v safe_a and_o send_v to_o jerusalem_n it_o be_v a_o great_a comfort_n and_o a_o great_a argument_n to_o stir_v up_o man_n heart_n to_o do_v good_a when_o they_o know_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o fraud_n nor_o deceit_n in_o the_o conveyance_n of_o it_o it_o be_v that_o only_a incentive_a that_o move_v our_o forefather_n to_o be_v so_o bountiful_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o they_o be_v that_o they_o go_v from_o the_o give_v of_o almsdeed_n to_o the_o build_n of_o cell_n and_o college_n and_o monastery_n and_o great_a church_n and_o goodly_a palace_n a_o strange_a and_o wondrous_a height_n there_o be_v of_o piety_n and_o devotion_n indeed_o there_o be_v much_o superstition_n mingle_v with_o it_o there_o be_v much_o vanity_n mix_v with_o it_o but_o yet_o we_o may_v well_o think_v that_o if_o those_o man_n have_v ever_o think_v of_o such_o sharker_n as_o come_v after_o they_o to_o pull_v down_o all_o and_o to_o make_v every_o thing_n equal_a with_o the_o ground_n they_o will_v have_v save_v a_o labour_n and_o will_v never_o have_v be_v so_o bountiful_a to_o the_o church_n if_o they_o have_v think_v that_o such_o a_o sort_n of_o intruder_n and_o ravenner_n will_v have_v take_v the_o good_n and_o the_o stock_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o stock_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o have_v make_v such_o havoc_n of_o they_o not_o care_v for_o the_o honour_n and_o respect_n of_o the_o church_n but_o here_o for_o this_o the_o apostle_n
spirit_n but_o the_o body_n this_o be_v the_o great_a mercy_n and_o blessing_n of_o god_n that_o although_o the_o body_n be_v never_o so_o naked_a yet_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o resurrection_n be_v make_v unto_o that_o for_o the_o spirit_n need_v no_o resurrection_n the_o spirit_n can_v rise_v for_o it_o never_o fall_v and_o as_o saint_n chrysostome_n say_v the_o resurrection_n must_v be_v of_o that_o which_o fall_v but_o the_o spirit_n never_o fall_v otherwise_o then_o by_o sin_n and_o it_o be_v not_o otherwise_o raise_v then_o by_o repentance_n a_o spiritual_a kind_n of_o resurrection_n but_o the_o apostle_n meddle_v not_o with_o that_o here_o but_o he_o call_v it_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n and_o he_o show_v that_o this_o comfort_n the_o body_n have_v that_o although_o it_o be_v never_o so_o poor_a and_o never_o so_o bare_a though_o it_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o furrow_n of_o the_o earth_n never_o so_o forlorn_a and_o forsake_v and_o be_v strip_v of_o all_o the_o glorious_a weed_n that_o it_o have_v before_o yet_o it_o have_v a_o promise_n that_o it_o shall_v resume_v unto_o it_o its_o former_a glory_n nay_o a_o far_o great_a glory_n a_o glory_n that_o shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o indeed_o the_o corn_n when_o it_o come_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n again_o it_o flourish_v for_o a_o time_n and_o then_o afterward_o be_v resolve_v into_o the_o old_a corn_n again_o and_o become_v like_o itself_o all_o the_o greenness_n and_o goodlines_n of_o it_o with_o two_o or_o three_o month_n dry_v sun_n fade_v away_o or_o with_o the_o blast_n of_o a_o tempest_n it_o perish_v but_o these_o body_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v raise_v again_o god_n shall_v give_v they_o that_o singular_a beauty_n that_o he_o intend_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o he_o shall_v give_v they_o that_o durability_n that_o duration_n that_o no_o wind_n shall_v weather-beat_a they_o no_o sun_n shall_v scorch_v they_o the_o sun_n shall_v not_o hurt_v they_o by_o day_n 121.6_o psal_n 121.6_o nor_o the_o moon_n by_o night_n for_o the_o lord_n be_v their_o protection_n and_o their_o candle_n for_o evermore_o part_n 2._o part._n god_n part_n i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o text_n which_o be_v god_n part_n he_o deny_v it_o to_o man_n and_o say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o sow_v that_o which_o shall_v be_v but_o he_o say_v god_n give_v it_o a_o body_n that_o be_v that_o body_n that_o god_n mean_v to_o give_v it_o man_n do_v not_o sow_v actual_o how_o come_v it_o then_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o he_o that_o guide_v and_o govern_v all_o thing_n he_o give_v to_o every_o seed_n a_o body_n as_o he_o please_v and_o to_o every_o seed_n his_o own_o proper_a body_n where_o first_o the_o apostle_n will_v reduce_v the_o glory_n of_o all_o the_o action_n of_o this_o creation_n to_o god_n all_o the_o operation_n in_o this_o great_a work_n it_o be_v of_o god_n and_o to_o make_v we_o to_o settle_v only_o in_o that_o he_o use_v a_o phrase_n that_o be_v most_o sweet_a and_o gentle_a when_o he_o say_v god_n give_v it_o a_o body_n he_o do_v not_o say_v god_n create_v and_o make_v it_o a_o body_n for_o those_o be_v work_n of_o labour_n we_o understand_v and_o conceive_v always_o by_o those_o work_n something_o that_o be_v painful_a and_o hard_o to_o be_v get_v and_o although_o god_n take_v no_o pain_n in_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n yet_o it_o be_v so_o propound_v to_o we_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o great_a difficulty_n therefore_o he_o take_v six_o day_n to_o make_v the_o world_n in_o to_o raise_v our_o intention_n to_o understand_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o work_n and_o the_o order_n that_o god_n take_v it_o be_v not_o a_o confusion_n therefore_o he_o do_v not_o all_o thing_n at_o once_o as_o he_o may_v have_v do_v but_o in_o succession_n of_o time_n but_o i_o say_v those_o word_n when_o they_o be_v use_v in_o scripture_n they_o be_v speak_v still_o in_o the_o sense_n and_o notion_n of_o labour_n but_o the_o word_n give_v be_v always_o take_v in_o another_o sense_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o facility_n and_o easiness_n to_o show_v both_o the_o quickness_n and_o facility_n and_o also_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o giver_n so_o in_o this_o that_o he_o say_v that_o god_n give_v it_o a_o body_n he_o show_v that_o it_o be_v a_o customary_a thing_n for_o he_o out_o of_o his_o hide_a treasure_n still_o to_o draw_v forth_o and_o to_o pour_v down_o his_o benefit_n upon_o mankind_n with_o chearfulnesse_n and_o good_a will_n his_o mind_n be_v set_v to_o do_v it_o not_o only_o to_o his_o friend_n but_o to_o his_o enemy_n 5.45_o mat._n 5.45_o for_o he_o make_v his_o sun_n to_o shine_v and_o his_o rain_n to_o fall_v upon_o the_o just_a and_o unjust_a and_o he_o make_v that_o corn_n to_o grow_v even_o the_o corn_n of_o infidel_n as_o well_o as_o christian_n so_o great_a be_v his_o goodness_n to_o mankind_n use_v and_o withal_o in_o that_o he_o say_v god_n give_v it_o a_o body_n it_o shall_v teach_v we_o always_o to_o receive_v these_o creature_n as_o gift_n from_o god_n as_o earnest_n of_o god_n love_n unto_o we_o a_o man_n that_o use_v these_o temporal_a thing_n either_o he_o must_v make_v they_o assurance_n of_o thing_n eternal_a or_o else_o he_o must_v abuse_v they_o and_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n of_o who_o we_o receive_v every_o thing_n therefore_o they_o must_v be_v use_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o donour_n our_o bread_n and_o food_n and_o all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o maintenance_n as_o they_o spring_v and_o issue_n from_o he_o so_o they_o shall_v be_v return_v to_o he_o with_o a_o retribution_n of_o thankfulness_n and_o a_o gracious_a conversation_n god_n give_v it_o a_o body_n and_o to_o every_o seed_n his_o own_o body_n this_o be_v the_o main_a point_n with_o which_o the_o apostle_n intend_v to_o comfort_v the_o present_a body_n that_o be_v afflict_v in_o this_o world_n for_o there_o be_v certain_a heretic_n that_o say_v there_o be_v one_o body_n that_o fall_v and_o another_o body_n that_o rise_v that_o there_o be_v one_o body_n that_o rot_v and_o corrupt_v in_o the_o grave_n and_o instead_o of_o that_o god_n give_v another_o body_n and_o so_o there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o mutation_n or_o substitution_n to_o let_v one_o body_n die_v but_o another_o to_o be_v raise_v out_o of_o the_o ash_n as_o the_o phoenix_n be_v say_v to_o rise_v out_o of_o the_o ash_n of_o her_o mother_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o say_v the_o apostle_n there_o be_v no_o substitution_n there_o be_v only_o by_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n a_o restitution_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n unto_o a_o high_a and_o a_o better_a and_o a_o more_o beautiful_a estate_n there_o be_v not_o one_o body_n that_o die_v and_o another_o body_n that_o be_v raise_v for_o then_o there_o can_v be_v no_o resurrection_n for_o what_o kind_n of_o victory_n can_v this_o be_v say_v to_o be_v over_o death_n if_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o be_v foil_v and_o conquer_v be_v not_o conqueror_n again_o by_o the_o powerful_a hand_n of_o god_n therefore_o christ_n be_v so_o careful_a to_o prove_v this_o point_n unto_o we_o that_o it_o be_v the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o rise_v that_o suffer_v upon_o the_o cross_n he_o be_v so_o careful_a i_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v know_v this_o that_o he_o ordain_v it_o so_o that_o thomas_n shall_v be_v so_o distrustful_a that_o he_o shall_v gage_v his_o wound_n 20.27_o joh._n 20.27_o and_o find_v the_o print_n of_o the_o nail_n that_o he_o may_v look_v on_o they_o that_o he_o may_v touch_v they_o and_o handle_v they_o that_o he_o may_v see_v that_o it_o be_v the_o same_o identicall_a body_n that_o he_o have_v before_o he_o go_v to_o the_o grave_n for_o he_o foresee_v that_o there_o will_v such_o a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n arise_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n both_o in_o his_o body_n personal_a and_o in_o his_o body_n mystical_a that_o there_o be_v a_o mutation_n of_o body_n that_o one_o body_n shall_v die_v and_o another_o rise_n in_o the_o place_n of_o it_o but_o against_o this_o the_o apostle_n say_v he_o give_v to_o every_o seed_n his_o own_o body_n in_o the_o body_n of_o nature_n the_o corn_n do_v oftentimes_o so_o degenerate_a that_o wheat_n will_v turn_v to_o barley_n and_o barley_n to_o oat_n the_o better_a corn_n will_v turn_v to_o worse_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o badness_n and_o hungrinesse_n of_o the_o ground_n or_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o seed_n or_o the_o unseasonablenesse_n of_o the_o time_n or_o the_o indiligence_n of_o the_o husbandman_n these_o thing_n oft_o time_n cause_v these_o mutation_n but_o in_o this_o seed_n our_o body_n